Selected quad for the lemma: king_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
king_n wit_n year_n yield_v 38 3 6.4904 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A54576 A compendious history of the Catholick church from the year 600 untill the year 1600 shewing her deformation and reformation : together with the rise, reign, rage, and begin-fall of the Roman AntiChrist : with many other profitable instructions gathered out of divers writers of the several times, and other histories / by Alexander Petrie ... Petrie, Alexander, 1594?-1662.; Church of Scotland. General Assembly. 1657 (1657) Wing P1879; ESTC R4555 1,586,559 1,238

There are 29 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

watch_v over_o their_o neighbour_n and_o other_o subject_n unto_o they_o and_o each_o prelate_n over_o his_o inferior_n ca._n 4._o as_o every_o one_o who_o love_v his_o brother_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n so_o every_o one_o who_o hate_v his_o brother_n be_v of_o the_o devil_n now_o it_o be_v dilate_v unto_o we_o that_o some_o priest_n love_v not_o their_o brethren_n nor_o the_o sunsetting_a as_o paul_n exhort_v bring_v they_o from_o wrath_n neither_o the_o yearly_a course_n of_o time_n have_v bring_v they_o to_o the_o grace_n of_o love_n to_o wit_n the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n have_v go_v from_o their_o heart_n therefore_o we_o ordain_v that_o such_o priest_n presume_v not_o to_o come_v nigh_o the_o altar_n to_o receive_v the_o grace_n of_o communion_n until_o they_o be_v knit_v together_o in_o true_a reconciliation_n ca._n 15._o it_o please_v to_o ordain_v that_o according_a to_o the_o determination_n of_o our_o father_n we_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o assemble_v once_o in_o the_o year_n at_o the_o time_n the_o will_n of_o the_o king_n or_o the_o metropolitan_a shall_v appoint_v and_o if_o any_o bishop_n absent_a himself_o except_o at_o inevitable_a necessity_n let_v he_o be_v punish_v with_o excommunication_n for_o a_o year_n there_o also_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o no_o bishop_n or_o other_o clerk_n shall_v meddle_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o blood_n under_o the_o punishment_n of_o perpetual_a excommunication_n that_o they_o who_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n shall_v give_v their_o oath_n before_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o their_o episcopal_a seat_n that_o they_o neither_o have_v give_v nor_o shall_v give_v unto_o any_o man_n any_o reward_n for_o purchase_v their_o dignity_n here_o many_o abuse_n of_o discipline_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v condemn_v the_o three_o age_n of_o the_o church_n or_o the_o history_n of_o the_o church_n fade_v and_o of_o antichrist_n rising_n contain_v the_o space_n of_o 400._o year_n from_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 600._o until_o the_o year_n 1000_o century_n viii_o chap._n i._o of_o emperor_n philippicus_n be_v crown_v a_o 712._o he_o be_v eloquent_a evil_a contention_n between_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n both_o of_o they_o mix_v a_o good_a cause_n with_o a_o evil_a and_o infortunate_a in_o his_o time_n the_o bulgarian_n waste_v thracia_n and_o the_o saracen_n prevail_v mighty_o in_o asia_n he_o be_v a_o monothelite_n he_o depose_v cyrus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n and_o advance_v john_n in_o his_o see_n in_o a_o synod_n he_o accurse_v all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n and_o send_v the_o act_n of_o this_o synod_n unto_o pope_n constantine_n will_v he_o to_o subscribe_v they_o who_o refuse_v and_o set_v up_o all_o the_o picture_n of_o those_o bishop_n who_o have_v be_v in_o the_o council_n in_o the_o gallery_n of_o saint_n peter_n when_o philippicus_n hear_v that_o he_o cause_v through_o all_o the_o royal_a city_n to_o cast_v down_o all_o the_o image_n of_o those_o bishop_n and_o he_o command_v that_o all_o image_n shall_v be_v take_v out_o of_o all_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o empire_n then_o constantine_n assemble_v a_o synod_n at_o rome_n and_o decree_v that_o image_n shall_v be_v worship_v with_o great_a reverence_n and_o bring_v the_o emperor_n in_o contempt_n call_v he_o a_o schismatic_a a_o monothelite_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o people_n of_o rome_n call_v he_o a_o usurper_n and_o not_o emperor_n and_o ordain_v that_o no_o mention_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o his_o name_n in_o public_a or_o private_a act_n and_o that_o no_o medal_n shall_v bear_v the_o name_n of_o that_o heretic_n either_o in_o brass_n silver_n or_o lead_n etc._n etc._n neither_o be_v his_o image_n bring_v into_o any_o church_n or_o his_o name_n mention_v in_o the_o mass_n abb._n vrsperg_n in_o chron._n beda_n ae_z sex_n aetat_fw-la the_o emperor_n contemn_v this_o manner_n of_o proceed_v say_v it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o david_n towards_o saul_n even_o when_o the_o spirit_n have_v leave_v he_o and_o contrary_a to_o christ_n who_o refuse_v not_o to_o pay_v tribute_n to_o the_o heathen_a caesar_n and_o to_o peter_n who_o exhort_v christian_n in_o pontus_n where_o be_v most_o cruel_a king_n to_o fear_v the_o king_n philippicus_n reign_v not_o above_o one_o year_n and_o six_o month_n for_o as_o zonoras_n write_v when_o he_o have_v invite_v his_o senator_n unto_o a_o feast_n after_o dinner_n they_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o pick_v out_o his_o eye_n and_o cast_v he_o into_o prison_n thus_o begin_v the_o controversy_n of_o image_n and_o until_o that_o time_n the_o worship_n of_o image_n be_v not_o confirm_v by_o decree_n and_o we_o may_v learn_v that_o image_n at_o first_o be_v put_v into_o church_n for_o history_n only_o for_o who_o can_v imagine_v that_o they_o will_v set_v up_o the_o image_n of_o all_o these_o bishop_n to_o be_v worship_v both_o the_o emperor_n and_o the_o pope_n do_v mix_v a_o good_a cause_n with_o a_o bad_a all_o the_o emperor_n follow_v except_o theodosius_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 160._o year_n do_v condemn_v the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o the_o error_n of_o the_o monothelite_n 2._o anastasius_n antemius_n be_v secretary_n to_o philippicus_n and_o then_o elect_v by_o the_o senator_n of_o constantinople_n he_o approve_v the_o act_n of_o the_o six_o council_n and_o write_v to_o pope_n constantine_n that_o he_o be_v a_o follower_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n beda_n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la he_o depose_v john_n the_o heretical_a bishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o do_v put_v germanus_n in_o his_o place_n he_o send_v a_o great_a army_n against_o the_o saracen_n in_o egypt_n but_o his_o army_n within_o few_o day_n leave_v the_o siege_n of_o alexandria_n because_o he_o make_v john_n a_o priest_n their_o general_n they_o kill_v he_o and_o salute_v theodosius_n a_o treasurer_n emperor_n against_o his_o will_n when_o they_o return_v through_o asia_n unto_o constantinople_n anastasius_n meet_v they_o and_o after_o a_o fight_n at_o nice_a when_o he_o hear_v that_o the_o constantinopolitan_o have_v give_v their_o key_n unto_o theodosius_n he_o render_v himself_o and_o vow_v to_o become_v a_o monk_n if_o they_o will_v do_v he_o no_o more_o harm_n so_o he_o be_v send_v into_o thessalonica_n in_o the_o 15._o month_n of_o his_o empire_n zonar_n &_o mexia_n 3._o theodosius_n be_v unfit_a for_o government_n and_o set_v up_o image_n in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o second_o year_n his_o soldier_n proclaim_v emperor_n leo_n their_o general_n theodosius_n will_v not_o fight_v but_o turn_v monk_n and_o so_o do_v his_o son_n theodosius_n after_o he_o have_v such_o assurance_n as_o he_o give_v to_o anastasius_n 4._o leo_n isaurus_n receive_v the_o crown_n an._n 717._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o prevail_v in_o extremity_n prayer_n prevail_v reign_n the_o saracen_n raise_v such_o a_o huge_a navy_n of_o ship_n and_o soldier_n that_o it_o be_v think_v the_o world_n will_v be_v a_o prey_n unto_o they_o leo_n dare_v not_o resist_v they_o so_o they_o do_v overrun_v all_o thracia_n they_o pass_v through_o greece_n into_o bulgaria_n only_o the_o bulgarian_n prepare_v some_o resistance_n the_o sicilian_n despair_n of_o aid_n from_o leo_n and_o choose_v a_o king_n tiberius_n when_o leo_n have_v be_v in_o this_o perplexity_n three_o year_n and_o the_o country_n have_v be_v plague_v with_o famine_n and_o pestilence_n then_o leo_n and_o all_o they_o who_o have_v be_v imprison_v within_o the_o wall_n of_o constantinople_n give_v themselves_o unto_o continual_a and_o earnest_a prayer_n god_n hear_v their_o cry_n and_o within_o a_o short_a space_n partly_o by_o the_o death_n of_o amurathes_n and_o dissension_n among_o the_o saracen_n about_o the_o election_n partly_o by_o extreme_a famine_n and_o coldness_n on_o land_n and_o partly_o by_o storm_n on_o sea_n that_o fearful_a enemy_n be_v bring_v to_o nought_o beda_n ae_z sex_n aetat_fw-la and_o leo_n possess_v all_o that_o he_o have_v before_o in_o the_o continent_n and_o isles_n the_o mahometans_n speak_v against_o nothing_o so_o much_o among_o the_o christian_n as_o against_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o therefore_o image_n anti-synod_n for_o and_o against_o image_n leo_n will_v have_v take_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n but_o be_v obstruct_v by_o germanus_n the_o patriarch_n wherefore_o he_o assemble_v a_o council_n a_o 730._o where_o the_o question_n be_v discuss_v and_o image_n be_v condemn_v germanus_n will_v not_o subscribe_v and_o renounce_v his_o bishopric_n the_o synod_n place_v anastasius_n in_o his_o chair_n paul_n diacon_n lib._n 2._o rerum_fw-la roman_n then_o leo_n cause_v the_o image_n and_o statue_n to_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o market_n street_n he_o do_v inhibit_v the_o worship_n of_o they_o and_o send_v unto_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ii_o to_o do_v the_o like_a at_o rome_n and_o through_o italy_n and_o
obey_v whether_o he_o will_v or_o not_o the_o king_n in_o this_o strait_n submit_v himself_o and_o resign_v the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o ireland_n from_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n for_o ever_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o and_o his_o heir_n shall_v have_v again_o the_o same_o dominion_n from_o the_o pope_n for_o pay_v yearly_o unto_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 1000_o mark_n of_o silver_n then_o he_o kneel_v and_o give_v his_o crown_n unto_o pandulf_n the_o legate_n who_o keep_v it_o five_o day_n as_o a_o seize_v of_o these_o two_o r_o ealm_n and_o the_o king_n confirm_v the_o same_o by_o his_o charter_n obligatory_a here_o by_o way_n of_o anticipation_n it_o be_v mark_v in_o the_o history_n that_o no_o king_n of_o england_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o subjection_n nor_o pay_v the_o farm_n pol._n virgil._n in_o hist_n anglor_n lib._n 15._o matth._n parisien_n say_v it_o be_v report_v by_o many_o that_o this_o detestable_a charter_n be_v burn_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n the_o iv_o an._n 1245._o when_o he_o cause_v his_o own_o wardrobe_n to_o be_v burn_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v obtain_v a_o new_a taxation_n from_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v convene_v at_o the_o general_a council_n and_o after_o the_o council_n he_o send_v a_o charter_n with_o a_o command_n unto_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o subscribe_v it_o and_o king_n henry_n be_v not_o only_o enrage_v against_o the_o bishop_n for_o subscribe_v it_o but_o do_v also_o swear_v that_o he_o will_v stand_v for_o the_o freedom_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o will_v not_o pay_v tribute_n to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n so_o long_o as_o he_o breathe_v but_o to_o return_v at_o that_o time_n some_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o abbot_n consent_v not_o unto_o this_o shameful_a action_n of_o who_o some_o come_v afterward_o like_o blind_a idiot_n unto_o pandulf_n and_o beg_v remission_n the_o base_a sort_n be_v forgive_v and_o the_o head_n as_o fat_a and_o fit_a for_o the_o pope_n mouth_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n innocentius_n be_v hold_v his_o latronal_a council_n and_o there_o do_v excommunicate_a otho_n the_o emperor_n john_n king_n of_o england_n peter_z king_n of_o arragon_n raymund_n earl_n of_o tolouse_n etc._n etc._n then_o stephen_n langton_n be_v send_v and_o absolve_v king_n john_n and_o immediate_o he_o call_v many_o bishop_n abbot_n earl_n and_o baron_n unto_o london_n and_o persuade_v they_o into_o a_o league_n against_o the_o king_n unless_o he_o will_v renounce_v all_o title_n unto_o vacant_a benefice_n ward_n of_o marriage_n etc._n etc._n then_o innocentius_n send_v nicolaus_n bishop_n of_o tusculo_n and_o he_o begin_v to_o intrude_v person_n into_o vacant_a benefice_n of_o canterbury_n as_o it_o please_v he_o the_o archbishop_n refuse_v and_o appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o sundry_a noble_n take_v part_n with_o he_o allege_v that_o they_o will_v defend_v the_o liberty_n of_o their_o country_n innocentius_n approve_v general_o all_o that_o his_o legate_n have_v do_v the_o bishop_n and_o lord_n stand_v for_o their_o liberty_n the_o king_n begin_v to_o think_v how_o to_o be_v relieve_v of_o his_o new_a tribute_n and_o send_v unto_o the_o pope_n request_v he_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o have_v be_v the_o occasion_n of_o all_o these_o broil_n with_o some_o of_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o will_v never_o intend_v exemption_n of_o his_o fue-duty_n and_o with_o his_o letter_n he_o send_v a_o sum_n of_o money_n but_o this_o stir_n be_v soon_o calm_v but_o by_o and_o by_o that_o faction_n do_v conveen_v again_o and_o do_v force_v the_o king_n to_o yield_v unto_o all_o their_o above_o name_v demand_n the_o king_n than_o send_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o show_v how_o they_o have_v wrest_v his_o power_n from_o he_o and_o crave_v his_o aid_n for_o recovery_n the_o pope_n send_v his_o excommunication_n against_o they_o all_o his_o nuntio_n charge_v stephen_n to_o publish_v the_o excommunication_n he_o refuse_v and_o post_v towards_o rome_n where_o after_o he_o be_v hear_v he_o be_v suspend_v and_o another_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v direct_v against_o all_o the_o noble_n and_o baron_n which_o have_v conspire_v against_o the_o pope_n belove_a son_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v proclaim_v to_o all_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o kingdom_n which_o will_v take_v part_n with_o the_o king_n and_o the_o legate_n against_o the_o lord_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n be_v command_v to_o publish_v this_o excommunication_n under_o no_o less_o pain_n then_o to_o be_v in_o the_o same_o danger_n then_o the_o lord_n matth._n parisien_n call_v they_o londoner_n to_o wit_n because_o of_o their_o league_n make_v in_o london_n be_v in_o despair_n and_o know_v no_o more_o whither_o to_o turn_v than_o the_o king_n do_v before_o but_o they_o cry_v out_o in_o reproach_n of_o the_o king_n say_v woe_n to_o thou_o john_n the_o last_o of_o king_n the_o abomination_n of_o english_a prince_n and_o confusion_n of_o our_o nobility_n alas_o thou_o have_v waste_v england_n and_o more_o will_v thou_o be_v waste_v alas_o england_n england_n etc._n etc._n then_o twenty_o four_o of_o they_o in_o name_n of_o the_o rest_n go_v unto_o philip_n king_n of_o france_n and_o entreat_v he_o to_o give_v they_o his_o elder_a son_n to_o be_v their_o king_n the_o pope_n understand_v this_o motion_n send_v wallo_n cardinal_n of_o st._n martin_n and_o charge_v philip_n to_o desist_v from_o so_o rash_a attempt_n and_o to_o defend_v his_o vassal_n john_n and_o the_o land_n of_o the_o church_n against_o those_o traitor_n philip_n do_v judge_v this_o a_o insolency_n and_o he_o hope_v that_o the_o lord_n will_v stand_v to_o their_o promise_n and_o partly_o he_o trust_v in_o the_o league_n late_o renew_v with_o alexander_n king_n of_o scot_n and_o therefore_o he_o answer_v the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n be_v never_o a_o part_n of_o peter_n patrimony_n nor_o shall_v it_o be_v hereafter_o no_o prince_n may_v pledge_v or_o give_v away_o his_o kingdom_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o baron_n which_o be_v tie_v to_o defend_v it_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v bring_v this_o preparative_n into_o christendom_n he_o will_v set_v at_o naught_o all_o king_n and_o kingdom_n i_o love_v not_o this_o example_n which_o be_v begin_v in_o these_o day_n and_o therefore_o i_o can_v allow_v what_o john_n have_v do_v though_o he_o be_v my_o utter_a enemy_n and_o i_o lament_v that_o he_o have_v so_o ruin_v that_o noble_a realm_n the_o peer_n stand_v by_o cry_v as_o in_o a_o fury_n with_o one_o voice_n we_o will_v stand_v to_o this_o article_n though_o to_o the_o lose_n of_o our_o life_n let_v john_n do_v as_o he_o will_v no_o king_n can_v put_v his_o land_n under_o tribute_n and_o so_o make_v his_o nobility_n slave_n lewes_n say_v the_o baron_n of_o england_n have_v elect_v i_o for_o their_o lord_n and_o king_n sure_o i_o will_v not_o lose_v my_o right_n but_o will_v fight_v for_o it_o unto_o death_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o i_o shall_v obtain_v it_o for_o i_o have_v friend_n among_o they_o his_o mother_n be_v sister_n of_o king_n john_n at_o this_o time_n john_n be_v go_v from_o place_n to_o place_n possess_v himself_o of_o the_o noble_a man_n land_n yet_o fear_v their_o attempt_n he_o come_v to_o dover_n expect_v aid_n from_o foreign_a country_n and_o many_o come_v to_o he_o from_o flanders_n braband_n and_o holland_n on_o the_o one_o side_n and_o from_o give_v gascony_n and_o poitiers_n on_o the_o other_o and_o a_o most_o wonderful_a number_n of_o man_n from_o other_o country_n for_o the_o report_n go_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v write_v unto_o they_o to_o assist_v king_n john_n wallo_n the_o legate_n follow_v lewis_n into_o england_n an._n 1216._o and_o renew_v the_o curse_n against_o he_o for_o usurp_a against_o john_n and_o against_o simon_n langton_n and_o other_o english_a which_o have_v excite_v lewis_n and_o against_o alexander_n the_o ii_o king_n of_o scot_n with_o a_o wonderful_a solemnity_n cause_v all_o the_o bell_n to_o be_v toll_v candle_n light_v church-door_n open_v and_o commit_v they_o all_o to_o the_o devil_n for_o their_o contumacy_n lewis_n cause_v the_o curse_n to_o be_v proclaim_v null_n and_o be_v accept_v at_o london_n as_o king_n he_o make_v simon_n high_a chancellor_n king_n alexander_n waste_v the_o north_n part_n of_o england_n and_o every_o one_o say_v the_o bull_n be_v of_o no_o force_n since_o the_o order_n of_o temporal_a affair_n do_v not_o belong_v unto_o the_o pope_n and_o what_o have_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o do_v with_o our_o war_n behold_v he_o will_v be_v the_o successor_n of_o constantine_n and_o not_o of_o peter_n matth._n parisien_n ad_fw-la an._n 1216._o it_o happen_v at_o that_o time_n that_o the_o viscount_n of_o mandevil_n who_o
before_o and_o after_o sermon_n administration_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n the_o manner_n of_o catechise_v the_o manner_n of_o censure_v scandalous_a person_n either_o repent_v or_o obstinate_a and_o prayer_n belong_v to_o ●ach_v one_o of_o those_o as_o also_o concern_v the_o visitation_n of_o the_o sick_a those_o who_o suffer_v in_o these_o province_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n accuse_v concern_v the_o mass_n prayer_n to_o saint_n worship_n of_o image_n purgatory_n the_o merit_n of_o work_n the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o like_a all_o which_o they_o deny_v upon_o ground_n of_o the_o scripture_n king_n philip_n ii_o go_v about_o to_o turn_v the_o civil_a gouvernment_n into_o a_o monarchy_n and_o be_v advise_v by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o lorraine_n to_o separate_v such_o part_n of_o these_o province_n as_o in_o former_a time_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o germany_n and_o france_n and_o erect_v new_a bishoprik_v in_o they_o then_o he_o erect_v three_o archbishoprik_v and_o twelve_z bishoprik_v whereas_o before_o they_o have_v but_o one_o bishoprik_n in_o vtrech●_n that_o by_o they_o as_o so_o many_o overseer_n the_o office_n of_o inquisition_n may_v be_v the_o more_o strict_o execute_v this_o be_v not_o dark_o make_v know_v by_o the_o pope_n bull_n grant_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n and_o henry_n the_o ambassador_n of_o spain_n declare_v the_o same_o plain_o unto_o william_n count_n of_o nassaw_n whereupon_o the_o state_n begin_v to_o consult_v how_o to_o defend_v themselves_o against_o the_o cruelty_n of_o inquisition_n thuan._n hist_o lib._n 22._o but_o first_o they_o write_v a_o confession_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o the_o year_n 1561._o and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o king_n with_o a_o supplication_n protest_v that_o it_o be_v great_a cruelty_n and_o iniquity_n to_o punish_v they_o as_o heretic_n so_o horrible_o because_o they_o forsake_v the_o tradition_n of_o man_n which_o have_v no_o warrant_n in_o god_n word_n the_o confession_n be_v at_o the_o first_o write_v by_o guido_n de_fw-fr bres_fw-fr who_o afterward_o seal_v it_o with_o his_o blood_n and_o gode●rid_a wingius_n who_o be_v send_v by_o the_o church_n of_o embden_n to_o gather_v the_o first_o reform_a church_n in_o flanders_n and_o other_o fellow-labourer_n in_o flanders_n brabant_n holland_n etc._n etc._n and_o it_o be_v communicate_v unto_o cornelius_n coolthunius_n and_o nicolaus_n carenaeus_n minister_n at_o embden_n unto_o pe._n dathen_n &_o caspar_n heidan_n at_o frankendal_n and_o other_o in_o other_o part_n it_o be_v present_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o the_o year_n 1562_o but_o he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o yield_v unto_o their_o supplication_n that_o they_o be_v the_o more_o grievous_o oppress_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o cruel_a persecution_n the_o number_n of_o true_a professor_n increase_v wonderful_o and_o by_o example_n of_o the_o french_a church_n which_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n charles_n ix_o have_v purchase_v some_o liberty_n they_o avow_v the_o religion_n open_o cardinal_z granvellan_o on_o the_o other_o side_n go_v about_o contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o noble_a man_n who_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n unto_o the_o government_n to_o afflict_v antwerp_n though_o have_v a_o particular_a exemption_n from_o the_o inquifition_n the_o noble_a man_n send_v their_o complaint_n against_o he_o and_o he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o authority_n by_o letter_n from_o the_o king_n but_o before_o his_o departure_n he_o have_v provide_v so_o and_o the_o king_n be_v so_o affect_v towards_o the_o inquisitor_n that_o their_o inquisition_n go_v on_o the_o more_o cruel_o among_o other_o great_a severity_n be_v use_v in_o antwerp_n against_o the_o believer_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o year_n 1564._o many_o noble_a man_n who_o before_o be_v enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n begin_v to_o hate_v such_o cruelty_n and_o embrace_v the_o gospel_n and_o albeit_o they_o see_v themselves_o in_o danger_n of_o the_o inquisition_n yet_o they_o determine_v to_o make_v a_o league_n of_o mutual_a defence_n namely_o that_o they_o will_v endeavour_v to_o help_v one_o another_o for_o avoid_v peril_n and_o to_o certify_v one_o another_o of_o the_o attempt_n and_o plot_n of_o their_o enemy_n when_o they_o have_v make_v this_o agreement_n they_o seek_v to_o gain_v the_o favour_n of_o other_o most_o bitter_a against_o they_o at_o that_o time_n margarit_fw-mi the_o duchess_n of_o parma_n and_o the_o king_n sister_n have_v the_o government_n of_o the_o seventien_n province_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o other_o ruler_n foresee_v the_o imminent_a danger_n she_o send_v count_n d'_fw-fr egmont_n a_o papist_n but_o a_o good_a patriot_n unto_o the_o king_n to_o certify_v he_o that_o great_a trouble_n be_v like_a to_o ensue_v which_o can_v not_o be_v prevent_v if_o the_o severity_n of_o those_o edict_n and_o the_o boldness_n of_o some_o man_n abuse_v they_o be_v not_o restrain_v then_o the_o king_n order_v the_o duchess_n to_o mollify_v the_o edict_n as_o necessity_n require_v with_o the_o advice_n of_o prudent_a man_n for_o prevent_v the_o danger_n which_o she_o fear_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v keep_v in_o safety_n she_o call_v a_o solemn_a counsel_n in_o which_o twelve_o man_n be_v appoint_v to_o rectify_v the_o business_n they_o call_v the_o odious_a inquisition_n a_o visitation_n and_o for_o burn_v they_o ordain_v hang_v but_o the_o inquisition_n be_v confirm_v and_o continue_v still_o this_o petty_a change_n do_v not_o please_v granvellan_n nor_o the_o pop_n legate_n in_o spain_n nor_o do_v they_o cease_v until_o the_o king_n discharge_v that_o order_n again_o so_o by_o a_o new_a edict_n he_o establish_v the_o inquisition_n and_o command_v that_o the_o former_a edict_n shall_v be_v every_o where_o put_v into_o execution_n date_v in_o december_n an._n 1565._o lii_o often_o mention_n have_v be_v make_v of_o the_o controversy_n concern_v the_o supper_n a_o retractation_n of_o bucer_n concern_v the_o supper_n presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o lord_n supper_n here_o by_o way_n of_o corollary_n for_o clear_v both_o the_o history_n and_o the_o state_n of_o that_o question_n i_o add_v the_o word_n of_o martin_n bucer_n in_o his_o enarration_n on_o matth._n 26._o in_o his_o second_o edition_n when_o he_o come_v to_o the_o institution_n of_o that_o sacrament_n he_o say_v it_o seem_v good_a to_o treat_v of_o this_o text_n as_o of_o new_a because_o in_o my_o former_a edition_n be_v some_o word_n whereby_o it_o may_v seem_v both_o that_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o declare_v the_o matter_n and_o that_o i_o have_v be_v too_o little_a dutiful_a towards_o those_o unto_o who_o we_o all_o who_o worship_n christ_n do_v owe_v very_o much_o for_o by_o our_o ingratitude_n towards_o the_o most_o large_a gift_n of_o god_n the_o revelation_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o have_v be_v in_o our_o time_n and_o by_o our_o sloth_n in_o all_o the_o work_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n we_o have_v deserve_v that_o god_n have_v suffer_v satan_n to_o raise_v a_o strife_n certain_o a_o very_a unhappy_a one_o among_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o revive_a gospel_n concern_v the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n into_o this_o contentien_n i_o also_o be_v draw_v while_o i_o know_v not_o with_o what_o zeal_n i_o do_v endeavour_v to_o defend_v some_o man_n against_o who_o other_o seem_v to_o deal_v too_o harsh_o and_o to_o eschew_v on_o the_o one_o hand_n the_o impanation_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o local_a enclose_v of_o he_o in_o the_o bread_n and_o on_o the_o other_o the_o preposterous_a confidence_n on_o the_o outward_a action_n in_o the_o sacrament_n i_o confess_v ingenuous_o that_o this_o zeal_n be_v immoderate_a and_o that_o i_o do_v not_o honour_n enough_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o who_o i_o see_v to_o be_v first_o promoter_n of_o the_o gospel_n unto_o we_o all_o tow●_n martin_n luther_n and_o some_o other_o neither_o do_v i_o consider_v right_o the_o damage_n which_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v by_o that_o difference_n for_o else_o i_o may_v have_v take_v another_o way_n both_o to_o defend_v the_o innocent_a and_o to_o wave_v the_o fond_a opinion_n neither_o shall_v i_o have_v take_v exception_n against_o the_o word_n that_o be_v agreeable_a unto_o scripture_n and_o may_v beuse_v pious_o which_o m._n luther_n and_o they_o who_o be_v with_o he_o do_v use_v for_o because_o i_o think_v that_o by_o those_o phrase_n the_o people_n be_v make_v to_o believe_v the_o impanation_n of_o christ_n or_o certain_o be_v a_o local_a enclose_v in_o the_o bread_n and_o that_o the_o sacrament_n by_o themselves_o after_o whatsoever_o manner_n they_o be_v take_v do_v bring_v salvation_n i_o think_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o only_o impugn_v those_o phrase_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v wave_v and_o other_o use_v that_o thereupon_o luther_n and_o other_o do_v judge_v that_o i_o
but_o serious_a for_o their_o ancient_a liberty_n and_o therefore_o be_v hate_v by_o the_o duke_n and_o philip_n montmerency_n count_n of_o horn_n a_o zealous_a reformer_n compear_v in_o the_o parliament_n trust_v to_o the_o proclaim_v safeconduct_n and_o both_o be_v behead_v at_o brussels_n without_o any_o regard_n of_o their_o former_a service_n to_o the_o king_n french_a common_a lib._n 7._o it_o be_v longsom_n to_o repeat_v what_o cruelty_n d'alva_fw-la show_v in_o spoil_v burn_a hang_a head_v hack_v rack_a and_o most_o horrible_o torture_v without_o respect_n of_o age_n sex_n or_o condition_n in_o the_o space_n of_o six_o year_n he_o be_v say_v to_o have_v put_v to_o death_n 18600._o person_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o hangman_n beside_o all_o other_o his_o barbarity_n he_o despise_v all_o ordinary_a judge_n and_o jurisdiction_n even_o howbeit_o many_o and_o earnest_a solicitation_n be_v put_v up_o in_o that_o behalf_n he_o and_o his_o spanish_a shoulder_n abuse_v woman_n young_a and_o old_a some_o to_o death_n he_o pull_v the_o skin_n off_o some_o be_v alive_a and_o head_v the_o drum_n with_o they_o he_o cause_v some_o body_n be_v take_v out_o of_o their_o grave_n and_o cause_v bury_v they_o under_o gibbet_n because_o as_o he_o say_v they_o have_v die_v without_o shrive_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v pretend_v rig●t_v unto_o their_o good_n he_o compel_v the_o wife_n be_v of_o they_o who_o be_v flee_v to_o marry_v his_o soldier_n in_o a_o word_n what_o be_v there_o under_o heaven_n so_o holy_a or_o honest_a which_o he_o defile_v not_o what_o barbarous_a cruelty_n practise_v he_o not_o as_o afterward_o be_v publish_v in_o a_o supplication_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o be_v extant_a be_v print_v at_o london_n an._n 157●_n with_o the_o french_a commentary_n for_o those_o cause_v the_o state_n of_o the_o netherlands_o begin_v to_o take_v arm_n against_o that_o duke_n in_o the_o year_n 1568._o and_o they_o choose_v william_n prince_n of_o orange_n to_o be_v their_o general_n he_o levy_v a_o army_n of_o german_n and_o netherlander_n mons_fw-la gent_o bring_v unto_o he_o some_o company_n of_o frenche_n out_o of_o picardy_n then_o pass_v the_o river_n at_o mentz_n he_o linger_v some_o month_n only_o skirmish_v now_o and_o then_o with_o the_o duke_n be_v soldier_n yet_o take_v some_o seal_n town_n in_o november_n he_o pass_v by_o the_o way_n of_o liege_n to_o join_v with_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n in_o picardy_n with_o little_a success_n ibid._n lib._n 8._o then_o d'alva_fw-la raise_v a_o great_a army_n boast_v to_o extinguish_v all_o the_o reform_a lewes_n count_n of_o nassaw_n and_o brother_n of_o william_n give_v battle_n unto_o the_o spanjard_n near_o groan_v in_o friesland_n disperse_v they_o and_o slay_v their_o commander_n john_n count_n o●_n arnebergh_n adolph_n a_o three_o brother_n die_v in_o another_o fight_n then_o d'alva_fw-la rage_v the_o more_o against_o the_o reformer_n and_o most_o cruel_o put_v to_o deat●_n gisebert_n and_o theodor_n battemburge_v two_o brother_n of_o a_o ancient_a family_n and_o other_o sixtien_n gentle_a man_n with_o they_o he_o lay_v new_a tribute_n on_o the_o people_n he_o devise_v new_a torment_n and_o every_o where_o horrible_a murder_n be_v see_v especial_o at_o torna_fw-la and_o valentia_n wherefore_o the_o people_n do_v flock_n unto_o the_o prince_n of_o orange_n albeit_o at_o the_o first_o he_o have_v hard_a luck_n yet_o when_o d'alva_fw-la require_v of_o every_o master_n of_o a_o family_n within_o the_o province_n the_o ten_o penny_n from_o each_o merchant_n the_o twenty_o penny_n and_o of_o all_o the_o land_n and_o house_n when_o they_o be_v sell_v the_o hundred_o penny_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o year_n 1570._o the_o war_n seem_v but_o to_o begin_v and_o more_o people_n join_v with_o the_o prince_n especial_o all_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n and_o the_o f●ssiners_n take_v the_o spanish_a navy_n come_v from_o the_o west-indies_n in_o the_o year_n 1572._o d'alva_fw-la accuse_v they_o of_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n and_o of_o blasphemy_n against_o god_n and_o do_v write_v so_o unto_o the_o king_n when_o the_o reform_a know_v of_o that_o letter_n they_o write_v the_o supplication_n whereof_o i_o speak_v before_o an._n 1573._o wherein_o they_o protest_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v they_o have_v not_o attempt_v it_o for_o any_o disloyalty_n unto_o the_o king_n their_o lawful_a superior_n but_o to_o defend_v themselves_o against_o the_o cruel_a oppression_n of_o the_o bloody_a tyrant_n d'alva_fw-la and_o they_o humble_o beseech_v the_o king_n to_o call_v to_o mind_n how_o those_o country_n be_v former_o divide_v among_o so_o many_o lord_n and_o ruler_n and_o afterward_o by_o marriage_n mutual_a treaty_n and_o lawful_a succession_n they_o come_v under_o one_o house_n of_o burgundy_n and_o now_o they_o be_v come_v under_o spain_n yet_o always_o with_o express_a condition_n that_o each_o of_o those_o province_n and_o republic_n shall_v still_o enjoy_v their_o former_a liberty_n and_o none_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v burden_v with_o the_o dominion_n of_o another_o but_o live_v joint_o together_o under_o one_o prince_n as_o so_o many_o child_n in_o their_o father_n house_n under_o one_o father_n for_o verification_n of_o this_o they_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o his_o own_o entrance_n among_o other_o how_o his_o father_n charles_n v._o cause_v he_o according_a to_o the_o accustom_a solemnisation_n repeat_v and_o confirm_v by_o oath_n the_o same_o privilege_n which_o he_o have_v also_o renew_v in_o a_o common_a assembly_n when_o he_o receive_v the_o government_n but_o now_o say_v they_o they_o be_v rob_v of_o their_o right_n and_o liberty_n yea_o horrible_o oppress_v by_o a_o stranger_n a_o tyrant_n a_o herod_n a_o nero_n etc._n etc._n and_o they_o name_v many_o of_o his_o oppression_n in_o the_o end_n they_o humble_o beseech_v he_o for_o god_n sake_n to_o bow_v his_o ear_n unto_o their_o just_a complaint_n and_o they_o profess_v that_o they_o desire_v not_o to_o be_v dissolve_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o his_o majesty_n but_o only_o that_o they_o may_v have_v conscience_n free_a unto_o god_n to_o hear_v his_o word_n as_o they_o must_v give_v accounpt_v at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n and_o to_o suffer_v the_o country_n enjoy_v their_o former_a liberty_n &_o custom_n as_o he_o have_v promise_v by_o oath_n and_o if_o he_o will_v be_v so_o gracious_a unto_o they_o they_o promise_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o weapon_n and_o to_o hazard_v their_o life_n and_o good_n in_o his_o service_n by_o sea_n or_o land_n etc._n etc._n this_o their_o supplication_n they_o cause_v to_o be_v print_v in_o latin_a dutch_a and_o english_a the_o same_o year_n philip_n call_v home_o duke_n d'alva_fw-la either_o because_o he_o do_v not_o allow_v his_o cruelty_n or_o because_o he_o do_v not_o prosper_v in_o the_o war_n but_o he_o despise_v their_o supplication_n and_o make_v no_o accounpt_n of_o their_o power_n nor_o confederate_a help_n say_v what_o can_v those_o mouse_n do_v so_o the_o state_n obtain_v neither_o civil_a liberty_n nor_o of_o religion_n do_v refuse_v all_o obedience_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n they_o put_v down_o all_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o resolve_v to_o defend_v themselves_o at_o the_o first_o they_o stamp_v their_o coin_n with_o a_o leash_n about_o a_o lion_n neck_n and_o a_o mouse_n between_o his_o foot_n with_o this_o circumscription_n rosis_fw-la leonem_fw-la loris_fw-la mus_fw-la liberat_fw-la meaning_n that_o their_o poor_a power_n will_v set_v religion_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o judah_n at_o liberty_n and_o allude_v unto_o that_o contemptuous_a word_n of_o king_n philip._n the_o first_o union_n of_o the_o province_n for_o government_n be_v between_o holland_n and_o zeeland_n in_o the_o year_n 1576._o aprile_a 15._o and_o concern_v religion_n the_o article_n be_v thus_o his_o excellence_n shall_v admit_v and_o maintain_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o reform_a euangelical_n religion_n and_o shall_v cause_v the_o exercise_n of_o all_o other_o religion_n that_o be_v contrary_a unto_o the_o gospel_n to_o surcease_v and_o leave_v off_o excep_v that_o his_o excellency_n shall_v not_o permit_v any_o inquisition_n upon_o any_o man_n belieff_a or_o conscience_n or_o that_o therefore_o any_o trouble_n injury_n or_o impediment_n shall_v be_v do_v unto_o any_o afterward_o five_o other_o province_n join_v with_o they_o and_o in_o the_o year_n 1579._o at_o utrecht_n be_v the_o general_n union_n of_o the_o seven_o in_o which_o the_o article_n concern_v religion_n be_v thus_o as_o for_o the_o permit_v or_o not_o permit_v the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n unto_o they_o who_o be_v different_a from_o the_o reform_a let_v every_o jurisdiction_n decern_v according_a to_o their_o own_o pleasure_n and_o custom_n but_o all_o shall_v grant_v liberty_n of_o religion_n and_o of_o conscience_n unto_o every_o man_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n persecute_v and_o trouble_v
they_o see_v minister_n have_v no_o command_n of_o their_o own_o but_o only_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n they_o may_v not_o domineer_v over_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o people_n but_o the_o magistrate_n have_v power_n to_o command_v the_o body_n and_o good_n of_o their_o subject_n the_o church-ministry_n be_v more_o like_o a_o fatherly_a than_o a_o kingly_a power_n and_o therefore_o their_o estimation_n be_v preserve_v according_a to_o their_o reverend_a teach_n and_o by_o honest_a entertainment_n which_o the_o magistrate_n procure_v &_o provide_v but_o the_o magistrate_n have_v civil_a compulsion_n ●ver_o all_o his_o subject_n as_o well_o minister_n as_o other_o and_o must_v be_v honour_v by_o they_o all_o with_o obedience_n subjection_n and_o payment_n of_o tribute_n so_o far_o he_o iii_o when_o the_o queen-mother_n have_v get_v the_o whole_a government_n of_o 9_o trouble_n of_o france_n under_o charles_n 9_o france_n than_o her_o rage_n and_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o guise_n be_v not_o against_o particular_a assembly_n &_o person_n only_o but_o they_o seek_v the_o destruction_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o people_n who_o follow_v not_o the_o superstition_n of_o rome_n whence_o arise_v intestine_a war_n in_o france_n once_o and_o again_o and_o the_o three_o time_n within_o nine_o year_n for_o when_o the_o queen_n see_v the_o loss_n of_o her_o excellent_a captain_n or_o that_o faction_n see_v no_o appearance_n to_o prevail_v they_o can_v feign_v peace_n to_o the_o end_n the_o reform_a may_v lay_v their_o weapon_n aside_o and_o then_o be_v take_v unaworse_a the_o apostate_n king_n of_o navarre_n be_v kill_v by_o a_o small_a pellet_n at_o the_o siege_n of_o rouen_n he_o be_v deadly_a wound_v be_v carry_v to_o paris_n and_o through_o vehemency_n of_o pain_n die_v desperate_o french_a commentar_n lib_fw-la 5._o the_o reform_a have_v but_o a_o few_o city_n lion_n fall_v from_o they_o by_o the_o craft_n of_o their_o governor_n and_o the_o reform_a within_o it_o be_v rob_v and_o murder_v their_o church_n be_v burn_v but_o some_o escape_v into_o the_o castle_n of_o s._n sebastian_n and_o from_o thence_o take_v their_o refuge_n into_o other_o place_n namely_o unto_o geneve_n in_o dolfeny_n the_o city_n valentia_n vienna_n roman_n and_o mantill_n take_v part_n with_o the_o noble_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n so_o in_o languedoc_n do_v nemeaux_n montpelier_n caster-albien_a and_o some_o city_n of_o the_o rhodes_n of_o sevenas_n and_o of_o vivaretz_n they_o have_v also_o montalban_n and_o all_o the_o circumiacent_a place_n orleans_n and_o the_o city_n there_o adjoin_v and_o rochel_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n be_v some_o protestant_n but_o they_o be_v exile_v out_o of_o the_o popish_a town_n whereby_o the_o army_n of_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n be_v the_o great_a the_o cruelty_n use_v in_o lion_n move_v the_o protestant_n to_o arise_v in_o other_o place_n so_o many_o be_v slay_v in_o every_o province_n for_o the_o papist_n burn_v the_o reform_a church_n and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o cry_v place_n of_o idolatry_n shall_v be_v demolish_v so_o they_o burn_v the_o popish_a church_n ibid._n lib._n 8._o in_o the_o second_o war_n pultrotz_n merae_n a_o soldier_n of_o lion_n be_v send_v with_o letter_n of_o mons_fw-la soubize_v unto_o the_o admiral_n caspar_n coligny_n war_a for_o the_o reform_a in_o normandy_n do_v insinuat_fw-la himself_n into_o credit_n with_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n and_o kill_v he_o with_o a_o pistol_n whereupon_o the_o queen_n consent_v into_o a_o peace_n and_o pultrotz_n be_v draw_v a_o sunder_o by_o four_o horse_n at_o paris_n this_o peace_n continue_v in_o some_o manner_n for_o five_o year_n but_o hot_a be_v the_o persecution_n in_o the_o year_n 1570_o the_o persecutor_n rush_v into_o the_o house_n of_o the_o reform_a and_o without_o pity_n murder_v man_n wife_n and_o child_n they_o choke_v some_o with_o smoke_n and_o throw_v other_o unto_o dog_n they_o do_v easy_o obtain_v edict_n from_o the_o king_n and_o dispensation_n from_o the_o bishop_n against_o the_o hugonot_n as_o they_o contemptuous_o call_v they_o but_o the_o most_o horrible_a murder_n be_v in_o the_o year_n 1572_o for_o that_o barbarous_a and_o infamous_a massacre_n when_o the_o king_n and_o his_o mother_n can_v not_o prevail_v by_o open_a violence_n they_o go_v about_o by_o slight_a and_o falsehood_n to_o wit_n they_o contract_v margarit_n the_o king_n sister_n unto_o henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n be_v scarce_o twenty_o year_n old_a the_o marriage_n be_v solemnize_v august_n 17._o by_o the_o cardinal_n of_o bourbon_n hither_o be_v all_o the_o chief_a protestant_n of_o france_n invite_v by_o the_o king_n letter_n full_a of_o love_n before_o the_o appoint_a day_n joanna_n the_o widow_n queen_n of_o navarre_n have_v a_o pair_n of_o glove_n send_v unto_o she_o from_o the_o court_n at_o paris_n wherewith_o she_o be_v kill_v on_o the_o 24_o day_n of_o august_n certain_a soldier_n be_v appoint_v in_o sundry_a place_n of_o the_o city_n to_o be_v ready_a at_o a_o watchword_n and_o when_o the_o reform_a be_v secure_a they_o be_v barbarous_o murder_v in_o their_o chamber_n when_o they_o have_v kill_v the_o admiral_n they_o throw_v he_o out_o at_o a_o window_n then_o they_o cut_v off_o his_o head_n and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o pope_n they_o cut_v off_o his_o hand_n &_o privy_a member_n and_o roll_v his_o body_n three_o day_n from_o street_n to_o street_n and_o at_o last_o draw_v it_o into_o the_o place_n of_o execution_n without_o the_o city_n and_o hang_v it_o by_o the_o foot_n this_o bloody_a execution_n continue_v many_o day_n how_o many_o be_v murder_v within_o that_o city_n may_v be_v guess_v by_o what_o ja._n thuan_n lib._n 52._o writ_n that_o he_o hear_v a_o goldsmith_n cruciarius_fw-la very_a worthy_a of_o the_o gallow_n vaunt_v that_o at_o that_o time_n he_o have_v slay_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n 400._o person_n and_o afterward_o be_v trouble_v in_o conscience_n remove_v himself_o from_o the_o company_n of_o man_n and_o become_v a_o anachorite_n when_o the_o hot_a of_o theirfury_n be_v over_o the_o king_n command_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o prince_n of_o condee_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o tell_v they_o that_o now_o he_o have_v attain_v sure_a remedy_n of_o settle_v the_o war_n and_o he_o have_v spare_v they_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o consanguinity_n and_o will_v yet_o spare_v they_o on_o condition_n that_o within_o three_o day_n they_o will_v renounce_v their_o heresy_n and_o return_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n be_v dash_v at_o such_o hard_a word_n and_o answer_v with_o fear_n he_o will_v obey_v the_o command_n whatever_o if_o his_o body_n and_o conscience_n be_v permit_v free_a the_o prince_n speak_v more_o confident_o urge_v the_o king_n oath_n that_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o the_o protestant_n and_o profess_v all_o obedience_n except_v religion_n the_o king_n charles_n 9_o call_v he_o obstinate_a and_o seditious_a and_o threaten_v he_o with_o death_n within_o three_o day_n thuan._n lib._n 52._o on_o thursday_n follow_v which_o be_v aug._n 28_o charles_n command_v a_o procession_n through_o paris_n wherein_o he_o go_v personal_o to_o give_v god_n thank_v public_o for_o the_o happy_a success_n of_o his_o enterprise_n and_o the_o same_o day_n he_o publish_v a_o edict_n show_v that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o admiral_n be_v death_n and_o of_o those_o his_o adherent_n not_o for_o religion_n say_v he_o nor_o of_o purpose_n to_o violat_a the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n but_o to_o prevent_v their_o conspiracy_n against_o his_o person_n and_o his_o mother_n and_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o other_o noble_n stand_v in_o his_o favour_n and_o he_o command_v that_o none_o of_o the_o reform_a religion_n shall_v have_v any_o private_a or_o public_a assembly_n under_o pain_n of_o lose_v both_o good_n and_o life_n until_o he_o be_v further_o advise_v addition_n to_o the_o 10_o book_n of_o comment_n the_o reader_n may_v judge_v how_o the_o first_o and_o last_o part_n of_o this_o edict_n do_v agree_v he_o profess_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o violat_a the_o act_n of_o pacification_n in_o which_o he_o have_v grant_v liberty_n of_o religion_n in_o august_n 1571._o and_o in_o the_o last_o word_n he_o discharge_v their_o assembly_n as_o for_o the_o conspiracy_n even_o the_o papist_n believe_v it_o nor_o say_v osiander_n ex_fw-la nigri_fw-la his_o dissimulation_n appear_v yet_o more_o that_o in_o the_o same_o edict_n he_o command_v all_o the_o protestant_n to_o abide_v at_o their_o own_o house_n under_o his_o protection_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o he_o have_v send_v command_n unto_o the_o governor_n of_o province_n and_o city_n to_o practice_v the_o like_a cruelty_n every_o where_n and_o so_o 500_o be_v kill_v at_o tolouse_n 800._o at_o
lion_n at_o rouen_n diep_n meausia_n orleans_n and_o other_o part_n within_o one_o month_n 30000_o thuan_n li._n ci●_n and_o in_o that_o year_n above_o 100000_o protestant_n be_v massacre_v th._n rogers_n in_o the_o preface_n of_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n not_o only_o be_v the_o protestant_n murder_v that_o way_n but_o many_o other_o for_o private_a malice_n or_o avarice_n of_o the_o executioner_n some_o of_o the_o governor_n refuse_v to_o obey_v that_o command_n as_o claudius_z count_z de_fw-fr tende_n when_o he_o have_v read_v it_o say_v he_o will_v obey_v the_o former_a edict_n but_o he_o doubt_v that_o this_o other_o be_v only_o colour_v with_o the_o king_n name_n therefore_o at_o the_o king_n command_v he_o be_v poison_v at_o avenion_n within_o few_o day_n mons_fw-la sautheram_n governor_n of_o auvergne_n refuse_v say_v he_o be_v the_o king_n lieutenant_n for_o execution_n of_o justice_n and_o not_o to_o be_v a_o hangman_n addition_n to_o the_o 10_o book_n of_o french_a come_v great_a mirth_n and_o procession_n be_v at_o rome_n when_o the_o pope_n hear_v of_o those_o massacre_n by_o the_o king_n commande_fw-fr horseman_n be_v dispatch_v into_o all_o part_n that_o no_o governor_n be_v absent_a from_o his_o charge_n and_o to_o watch_v and_o ward_v diligent_o and_o to_o search_v narrow_o all_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o reform_a and_o to_o punish_v they_o without_o exception_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n they_o be_v apprehend_v who_o keep_v their_o house_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o king_n protection_n many_o be_v murder_v and_o all_o almost_o be_v rob_v as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v vanquish_v enemy_n so_o that_o nothing_o seem_v to_o remain_v unto_o they_o but_o utter_a confusion_n on_o the_o 10_o day_n of_o september_n charles_n send_v for_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n and_o will_v he_o to_o choose_v one_o of_o three_o either_o mass_n or_o death_n or_o perpetual_a prison_n he_o answer_v he_o will_v never_o choose_v the_o first_o and_o he_o leave_v the_o other_o two_o unto_o the_o king_n pleasure_n thuan._n lib._n 53._o before_o he_o obtain_v liberty_n he_o be_v induce_v to_o subscribe_v that_o abjuration_n whereof_o a_o copy_n be_v in_o the_o 10_o book_n of_o the_o french_a comment_n so_o do_v henry_n king_n of_o navarsway_n with_o the_o time_n these_o two_o easy_o without_o petition_v receive_v pardon_n from_o pope_n gregory_n xiii_o by_o intercession_n of_o king_n charles_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o late_a queen_n of_o navarre_n have_v be_v a_o assembly_n in_o bearn_n and_o by_o free_a consent_n of_o the_o state_n the_o mass_n be_v discharge_v throughout_o all_o that_o realm_n but_o then_o in_o the_o year_n 1572_o october_n 15_o king_n henry_n publish_v a_o contrary_a edict_n forbid_v the_o reform_a religion_n and_o he_o send_v mons_fw-la grammount_n grant_v leave_n unto_o the_o reform_a to_o sell_v their_o land_n within_o a_o year_n and_o then_o remove_v or_o to_o conform_v themselves_o the_o people_n be_v not_o move_v by_o these_o letter_n and_o say_v these_o letter_n be_v extort_a from_o the_o king_n in_o his_o captivity_n thuan-ibi_a nevertheless_o those_o example_n move_v many_o who_o be_v think_v to_o love_v the_o religion_n to_o profess_v the_o contrary_n the_o city_n rochel_n montauban_n sanser_n anduz_n and_o other_o town_n in_o vivaretz_n and_o sevenatz_n continue_v constant_a but_o it_o seem_v unto_o many_o of_o themselves_o great_a folly_n join_v with_o madness_n after_o so_o great_a overthrow_n of_o all_o the_o nobility_n and_o so_o many_o other_o to_o think_v upon_o any_o defence_n when_o scarce_o any_o noble_a man_n dare_v own_o the_o religion_n and_o not_o a_o few_o say_v it_o be_v not_o lawful_a that_o subject_n shall_v bear_v arm_n against_o their_o king_n albeit_o he_o be_v wicked_a as_o it_o have_v appear_v by_o the_o success_n ●n_v a_o word_n all_o of_o they_o be_v uncertain_a what_o to_o do_v and_o inevitable_a destruction_n seem_v to_o be_v bring_v on_o the_o church_n in_o france_n the_o chief_a man_n be_v go_v they_o have_v no_o help_n from_o germany_n nor_o england_n as_o before_o yet_o the_o help_a hand_n of_o god_n appear_v in_o due_a time_n french_a comment_n lib._n 11._o the_o king_n send_v noble_a man_n unto_o those_o city_n command_v they_o to_o receive_v garrison_n and_o a_o lieutenant_n they_o be_v all_o perplex_a on_o both_o side_n death_n seem_v to_o be_v at_o hand_n they_o be_v resolve_v to_o yield_v but_o fear_v make_v the●_n to_o delay_v the_o citizen_n of_o castre_n receive_v a_o garrison_n upon_o trust_n of_o the_o king_n promise_n they_o be_v all_o put_v to_o the_o edge_n of_o the_o sword_n with_o no_o less_o cruelty_n than_o other_o before_o rochel_n be_v ready_a to_o have_v give_v obedience_n but_o when_o they_o be_v inform_v of_o that_o false_a cruelty_n or_o cruel_a deceit_n they_o refuse_v to_o render_v and_o so_o begin_v the_o four_o war_n in_o france_n with_o the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n and_o other_o part_n be_v invade_v with_o huge_a violence_n it_o be_v the_o divine_a providence_n that_o the_o nobility_n fail_v he_o alone_o may_v be_v know_v the_o author_n of_o the_o work_n the_o particular_n be_v describe_v in_o the_o book_n last_o mention_v and_o will_v go_v beyond_o my_o purpose_n to_o repeat_v they_o i_o will_v only_o touch_v the_o siege_n of_o rochel_n and_o the_o end_n of_o those_o war_n the_o siege_n continue_v seven_o month_n in_o it_o two_o thing_n be_v very_o remarkable_a first_o notwithstanding_o all_o the_o ordinance_n and_o batter_a piece_n that_o be_v discharge_v against_o they_o to_o the_o number_n of_o 6000._o shot_n only_o 25._o rocheller_n be_v slay_v and_o how_o many_o of_o the_o beseeger_n be_v slay_v it_o be_v uncertain_a but_o it_o may_v be_v conjecture_v that_o 132._o commander_n be_v kill_v of_o who_o the_o chief_a be_v claude_n duke_n do_v aumale_a uncle_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n march_n 3._o 1573._o the_o great_a assault_n be_v seven_o the_o other_o remarkable_a thing_n be_v the_o poor_a sort_n of_o the_o town_n begin_v to_o want_v bread_n and_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o supply_n be_v furnish_v unto_o they_o to_o wit_n every_o day_n in_o the_o river_n they_o have_v plenty_n of_o fish_n surdones_n which_o they_o have_v never_o see_v before_o and_o the_o same_o day_n that_o the_o siege_n be_v raise_v those_o wereseen_a no_o more_o so_o both_o rich_a and_o poor_a have_v plenty_n within_o and_o the_o king_n army_n without_o be_v grieve_v with_o famine_n wherefore_o charles_n send_v word_n unto_o his_o brother_n henry_n command_v he_o either_o to_o take-in_a the_o town_n instant_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a or_o to_o leave_v it_o in_o aprile_a he_o continue_v two_o month_n long_o until_o word_n be_v bring_v that_o he_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o poland_n in_o the_o mean_a while_n sanserre_n suffer_v a_o hard_a siege_n that_o parent_n do_v eat_v their_o own_o little_a one_o a_o general_a peace_n be_v proclaim_v and_o liberty_n of_o religion_n be_v grant_v in_o july_n an._n 1573._o thuan._n lib._n 54._o the_o edict_n of_o pacification_n be_v conceive_v in_o general_a term_n without_o name_v any_o city_n those_o of_o nismes_n and_o languedoc_n take_v exception_n at_o that_o thereupon_o all_o the_o protestant_a town_n write_v unto_o the_o duke_n of_o anjou_n give_v he_o thanks_o for_o the_o peace_n and_o beseech_v he_o to_o procure_v unto_o they_o leave_v to_o assemble_v in_o a_o fit_a place_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v know_v the_o particulares_fw-la of_o the_o pacification_n in_o convenient_a time_n and_o that_o he_o will_v grant_v they_o his_o letter_n patent_n for_o their_o assurance_n then_o many_o conveened_a from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o realm_n as_o the_o time_n will_v suffer_v and_o so_o they_o provide_v for_o themselves_o fre._n come_v lib._n 12._o the_o next_o year_n charles_n die_v in_o that_o book_n it_o be_v write_v of_o his_o death_n thus_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o he_o die_v of_o a_o bloody_a flix_a and_o it_o be_v report_v for_o truth_n by_o the_o great_a part_n that_o the_o blood_n be_v hue_v out_o of_o sundry_a part_n of_o his_o body_n and_o in_o his_o bed_n he_o can_v have_v little_a rest_n but_o horrible_o blaspheme_v the_o name_n of_o god_n which_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o do_v even_o from_o his_o childhood_n thuan_n lib._n 57_o witness_v of_o his_o unrest_n and_o affrighment_n in_o the_o night_n and_o that_o heendeavour_v to_o settle_v it_o by_o music_n and_o because_o it_o be_v suspect_v that_o he_o have_v be_v poison_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v vomit_v the_o blood_n with_o the_o more_o ease_n he_o be_v bolster_v up_o with_o pillow_n that_o his_o foot_n lay_v high_a than_o his_o head_n another_o have_v comprise_v the_o cause_n and_o manner_n of_o his_o death_n in_o those_o verse_n naribus_fw-la ore_fw-la oculis_fw-la atque_fw-la auribus_fw-la
choose_v matthew_n earl_n of_o lennox_n who_o be_v grand_a father_n of_o the_o king_n to_o be_v regent_n he_o with_o 5000._o man_n keep_v the_o day_n at_o lithgow_n for_o the_o parliament_n but_o none_o of_o the_o adverse_a faction_n come_v in_o his_o time_n the_o trouble_n cease_v not_o sometime_o by_o the_o mediation_n of_o queen_n elisabeth_n be_v a_o treaty_n betwixt_o the_o party_n but_o it_o be_v neither_o to_o her_o contentment_n nor_o will_v the_o king_n party_n yield_v any_o of_o his_o right_n and_o so_o the_o treaty_n have_v no_o effect_n yea_o and_o all_o the_o time_n the_o country_n have_v no_o quietness_n they_o who_o be_v on_o the_o queen_n side_n have_v encouragement_n from_o france_n and_o duke_n d'alva_fw-la governor_n of_o flanders_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1571._o both_o party_n conveene_n a_o parliament_n the_o queen_n party_n at_o edinburgh_n and_o the_o king_n party_n at_o sterlin_n where_o as_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n they_o keep_v not_o a_o watch_n which_o the_o other_o party_n hear_v l._n claud_n hamilton_v come_v in_o the_o night_n time_n and_o take_v the_o regent_n out_o of_o his_o lodging_n in_o september_n and_o when_o they_o see_v other_o come_v for_o his_o rescue_n they_o kill_v he_o with_o ●_o shoot_v george_n bell_n the_o chief_a adviser_n of_o this_o enterprise_n and_o captain_n lawder_n the_o murderer_n be_v take_v and_o punish_v as_o traitor_n i_o return_v unto_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n the_o assembly_n conveene_n at_o edinburgh_n july_n 5._o assembly_n the_o xix_o assembly_n an._n 1570._o robert_n pont_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v direct_v against_o patrick_n call_v bishop_n of_o morray_n to_o be_v execute_v by_o ro._n pont_n visitor_n there_o with_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o edinb_n 2._o minister_n at_o their_o admission_n shall_v protest_v solemn_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o leave_v their_o vocation_n under_o rhe_n pain_n of_o infamy_n &_o perjury_n etc._n etc._n 3._o trial_n shall_v be_v take_v of_o young_a child_n how_o they_o be_v bring_v up_o by_o their_o parent_n in_o the_o true_a religion_n therefore_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o every_o parishon_n shall_v examine_v the_o child_n when_o they_o come_v to_o nine_o year_n of_o age_n and_o when_o they_o come_v to_o twelve_o year_n and_o the_o three_o time_n when_o they_o come_v to_o 14._o year_n that_o it_o may_v be_v know_v how_o they_o have_v profit_v in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n 4._o because_o some_o noble_a man_n have_v make_v defection_n from_o the_o king_n lawful_a authority_n certain_a brethren_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o earl_n lord_n and_o all_o which_o make_v that_o defection_n to_o deal_v with_o they_o with_o earnest_a persuasion_n of_o reconciliation_n with_o certification_n if_o they_o continue_v in_o disobedience_n the_o church_n will_v use_v the_o sword_n against_o they_o which_o god_n in_o his_o word_n have_v commit_v unto_o they_o and_o the_o commissioner_n be_v to_o report_v their_o answer_n unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n 5._o james_n carmichell_n schoolmaster_n of_o santandrews_n accuse_v rob._n hamilton_n minister_n there_o of_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o a_o sermon_n the_o clerk_n register_n and_o the_o justice-clerk_n and_o another_o lord_n of_o the_o session_n show_v in_o the_o l._n chancellor_n name_n that_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o that_o controversy_n and_o it_o contain_v some_o point_n tend_v to_o treason_n and_o against_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o therefore_o they_o require_v that_o the_o assembly_n will_v not_o decide_v in_o that_o matter_n concern_v the_o king_n authority_n until_o the_o nobility_n conveen_v which_o will_v be_v within_o few_o day_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n as_o concern_v heresy_n or_o proper_o belong_v unto_o their_o jurisdiction_n they_o may_v proceed_v unto_o this_o protestation_n the_o assembly_n agree_v and_o wenton_a in_o discuss_v the_o complaint_n in_o so_o far_o as_o be_v concern_v doctrine_n and_o slander_n that_o may_v arise_v thereupon_o but_o i_o find_v not_o the_o particular_n 5._o conceiler_n of_o adultery_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o examine_v and_o if_o they_o be_v convict_v to_o have_v cloak_v adultery_n witting_o let_v the_o rule_n have_v place_n agentes_fw-la &_o consentientes_fw-la pari_fw-la poená_fw-la puniantur_fw-la 6._o quaeritur_fw-la a_o woman_n bring_v forth_o a_o child_n and_o in_o time_n of_o her_o birth_n before_o the_o midwife_n depones_fw-la that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o child_n and_o be_v call_v before_o a_o judge_n be_v ready_a to_o swear_v the_o same_o and_o that_o man_n be_v ready_a to_o swear_v that_o he_o have_v never_o carnal_a deal_n with_o that_o woman_n and_o there_o be_v not_o other_o proof_n to_o which_o of_o two_o shall_v credit_n be_v give_v ans_fw-fr neutri_fw-la credendum_fw-la 7._o the_o assembly_n give_v commission_n unto_o certain_a minister_n baron_n and_o burgess_n to_o compear_v at_o edinburgh_n the_o twelth_n of_o the_o instant_n with_o continuation_n of_o day_n or_o whensoever_o the_o nobility_n shall_v conveen_v before_o the_o time_n of_o the_o next_o assembly_n to_o require_v humble_o a_o answer_n unto_o their_o article_n and_o supplication_n with_o redress_n of_o their_o complaint_n according_a to_o equity_n to_o assist_v concur_v and_o assent_v to_o all_o and_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v treat_v in_o the_o foresay_a convention_n tend_v to_o the_o promove_v of_o god_n glory_n the_o maintain_v the_o true_a religion_n the_o king_n authority_n the_o common_a well_o and_o authority_n of_o the_o realm_n as_o also_o to_o take_v cognition_n in_o all_o complaint_n supplication_n and_o request_n of_o brethren_n special_o remit_v unto_o they_o by_o this_o assembly_n and_o whatsoever_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o they_o in_o the_o premise_n to_o report_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o next_o general_a assembly_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v at_o edinburgh_n march_n 5._o next_o to_o come_v promise_v to_o hold_v firm_a and_o stable_a whatsoever_o these_o brethren_n or_o any_o eight_o or_o seven_o of_o they_o think_v good_a in_o the_o premise_n to_o be_v do_v 3._o all_o assignation_n and_o pension_n grant_v by_o the_o church_n during_o their_o will_n to_o whatsoever_o person_n or_o person_n before_o this_o date_n be_v discharge_v except_o only_o what_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o king_n use_n x._o at_o edinb_n march_n 5._o conveene_n the_o assembly_n ge._n hay_o be_v choose_v assembly_n 1571._o the_o xx._n assembly_n moderator_n i._o all_o superintendent_o &_o commissioner_n to_o visit_v church_n shall_v bring_v their_o book_n of_o visitation_n unto_o every_o assembly_n next_o follow_v to_o be_v consider_v by_o such_o brethren_n as_o shall_v be_v appoint_v by_o the_o assembly_n that_o the_o church_n may_v the_o better_a know_v their_o diligence_n in_o execute_v their_o office_n ii_o six_o article_n concern_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v to_o be_v ptopound_v unto_o the_o regent_n and_o counsel_n and_o seek_v to_o be_v approve_v by_o they_o 1._o that_o the_o church_n have_v the_o judge_n of_o true_a and_o false_a religion_n doctrine_n heresy_n and_o such_o like_a that_o be_v annex_v to_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o ministration_n of_o sacrament_n 2._o election_n examination_n and_o admission_n of_o they_o which_o be_v to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o ministry_n and_o other_o function_n in_o the_o church_n to_o charge_v of_o soul_n and_o ecclesiastical_a benefice_n together_o with_o the_o suspension_n or_o deprivation_n of_o such_o for_o lawful_a cause_n 3._o all_o thing_n concern_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n which_o stand_v in_o correction_n of_o manner_n admonition_n excommunication_n &_o receive_v to_o repentance_n 4._o the_o judgement_n of_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n betwixt_o person_n that_o be_v of_o the_o church_n especial_o that_o be_v of_o the_o ministry_n alswell_o in_o matter_n of_o benefice_n as_o other_o 5._o jurisdiction_n to_o proceed_v with_o admonition_n to_o the_o process_n of_o excommunication_n if_o need_n shall_v be_v against_o they_o that_o shall_v rob_v the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n appartain_v to_o the_o ministry_n or_o other_o way_n intromet_n with_o it_o unjust_o whereby_o the_o ministry_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o decay_n by_o occasion_n of_o the_o poverty_n of_o the_o minister_n 6._o because_o the_o conjunction_n of_o marriage_n pertain_v to_o the_o ministry_n the_o cause_n of_o adherence_n and_o divorcement_n ought_v also_o to_o appertain_v unto_o they_o as_o natural_o annex_v thereunto_o iii_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o adulterer_n and_o such_o other_o scandalous_a person_n shall_v hereafter_o be_v call_v by_o the_o superintendent_n or_o commissioner_n of_o the_o province_n to_o compear_v before_o their_o synodall_n convention_n and_o there_o receive_v their_o injunction_n as_o before_o in_o the_o general_a assembly_n 4._o all_o question_n shall_v be_v propound_v or_o represent_v to_o the_o superintendent_o and_o
disobey_v to_o proceed_v against_o they_o with_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n ...._o 6._o because_o bihop_n be_v to_o be_v charge_v to_o remove_v the_o corruption_n of_o that_o estate_n the_o particulares_fw-la be_v name_v to_o wit_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v content_a to_o be_v pastor_n or_o minister_n of_o a_o flock_n 2._o they_o shall_v usurp_v no_o criminal_a jurisdiction_n 3._o they_o shall_v not_o in_o parliament_n vote_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n without_o commission_n from_o the_o church_n 4._o that_o they_o take_v not_o up_o for_o mantenance_n of_o their_o ambition_n and_o riotousness_n the_o emolument_n of_o the_o church_n which_o may_v sustain_v many_o pastor_n and_o help_v the_o school_n &_o poor_a but_o be_v content_a with_o a_o reasonable_a live_v according_a to_o their_o office_n 6._o they_o shall_v not_o domineer_v over_o the_o particular_a eldership_n but_o be_v subject_n unto_o it_o 7._o that_o they_o usurp_v not_o the_o power_n of_o presbytetery_n 8._o they_o shall_v not_o take_v further_a bound_n of_o visitation_n than_o the_o church_n commit_v unto_o they_o withal_o they_o shall_v promise_v that_o if_o the_o g._n assem_fw-la shall_v find_v any_o other_o corruption_n in_o that_o estate_n they_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o be_v reform_v by_o the_o assembly_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n vii_o because_o many_o send_v their_o child_n over_o sea_n into_o place_n where_o superstition_n and_o papistry_n be_v maintain_v under_o pretence_n of_o seek_v further_o learning_n and_o other_o of_o perfect_a age_n go_v away_o under_o the_o same_o pretence_n and_o become_v for_o the_o most_o part_n corrupt_v in_o religion_n it_o be_v ordain_v that_o the_o parent_n of_o these_o child_n or_o that_o hereafter_o shall_v send_v their_o chidren_n into_o such_o place_n shall_v be_v charge_v by_o their_o own_o minister_n to_o call_v their_o child_n home_o again_o with_o all_o convenient_a expedition_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n and_o they_o who_o be_v of_o perfectage_n have_v go_v or_o shall_v go_v into_o such_o place_n shall_v be_v charge_v in_o like_a manner_n to_o remove_v themselves_o out_o of_o these_o place_n observe_v 1._o how_o these_o lea●es_n of_o the_o book_n be_v take_v away_o it_o will_v appear_v hereafter_o at_o the_o year_n 1587._o 2._o the_o historical_a narration_n show_v that_o james_n bishop_n of_o glasgow_n do_v not_o submit_v at_o that_o synod_n but_o at_o last_o he_o do_v yield_v and_o his_o submission_n in_o write_n be_v bring_v unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n as_o also_o commission_n be_v give_v in_o that_o octob._n unto_o certain_a minister_n to_o charge_n patrick_n bishop_n of_o santandrews_n for_o transgress_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o former_a submission_n and_o to_o charge_v he_o to_o forsake_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o estate_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o his_o person_n as_o they_o shall_v be_v particular_o specify_v unto_o he_o and_o if_o he_o refuse_v after_o due_a admonition_n to_o excommunicate_a he_o that_o commission_n be_v renew_a in_o july_n year_n 1579._o to_o charge_n he_o de_fw-fr novo_fw-la to_o quite_o the_o particular_a corruption_n and_o to_o charge_v he_o with_o these_o offence_n 1._o that_o have_v submit_v unto_o the_o assembly_n he_o go_v thereafter_o and_o vote_v in_o parliament_n 2._o he_o give_v collation_n of_o a_o vicarage_n have_v no_o power_n where_o the_o vicarage_n lie_v 3._o albeit_o he_o have_v consent_v unto_o all_o the_o head_n of_o the_o policy_n but_o four_o yet_o he_o oppose_v it_o in_o the_o parliament_n in_o a_o word_n all_o the_o bishop_n be_v bring_v into_o subjection_n do_v submit_v and_o quite_o the_o corruption_n of_o that_o estate_n and_o obey_v the_o act_n that_o be_v make_v against_o bishop_n in_o july_n 1580._o in_o that_o assembly_n the_o bishop_n of_o dunkell_n who_o have_v be_v depose_v before_o for_o not_o recover_v a_o tack_v make_v to_o the_o earl_n of_o argile_n be_v charge_v to_o dimitt_n his_o bishopric_n and_o report_v the_o loss_n of_o dilapidation_n of_o the_o rent_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n so_o far_o there_o which_o for_o brevity_n i_o conjoin_v here_o see_v bishop_n have_v never_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o nationall_n assembly_n and_o be_v intrude_v be_v subdue_v in_o this_o manner_n at_o that_o time_n how_o can_v any_o man_n say_v unless_o he_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o estate_n of_o the_o church_n or_o petverse_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o only_a government_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n be_v by_o bishop_n and_o superintendent_o when_o the_o second_o confession_n of_o faith_n be_v subscribe_v to_o wit_n in_o the_o year_n 1581._o xvi_o the_o assembly_n conveene_n at_o edinburgh_n july_n 7._o year_n 1579._o thomas_n smeton_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o john_n duncanson_n the_o king_n minister_n assembly_n the_o 37._o assembly_n bring_v a_o letter_n from_o his_o ma._n in_o these_o word_n right_o trusty_a and_o well-beloved_a we_o greet_v you_o hearty_o well_o understanding_n of_o your_o present_a assembly_n at_o edinburgh_n and_o for_o the_o rumour_n that_o pass_v of_o some_o thing_n that_o be_v to_o be_v treat_v among_o you_o that_o may_v seem_v prejudicial_a to_o that_o good_a order_n of_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n heretofore_o long_o travelled-in_a and_o hoped-for_a we_o have_v take_v occasion_n to_o show_v our_o mind_n in_o this_o behalf_n unto_o the_o minister_n of_o our_o own_o house_n and_o some_o other_o of_o your_o number_n happen_v to_o be_v present_a with_o we_o in_o this_o cause_n we_o have_v think_v meet_a to_o use_v they_o as_o our_o messenger_n to_o carry_v our_o letter_n whereby_o we_o will_v hearty_o desire_v and_o affectuous_o admonish_v you_o that_o in_o this_o our_o young_a age_n the_o time_n be_v subject_a to_o so_o many_o difficulty_n and_o imperfection_n to_o bestow_v your_o common_a care_n and_o good_a will_n to_o entertain_v peace_n &_o quietness_n in_o god_n fear_n and_o our_o due_a obedience_n forbear_v any_o proceed_n at_o this_o time_n that_o may_v touch_v matter_n heretofore_o not_o conclude_v by_o our_o law_n or_o receive_v into_o practice_n but_o whatever_o in_o the_o former_a conference_n touch_v the_o policy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v remit_v to_o be_v reason_v and_o decide_v by_o our_o state_n in_o parliament_n let_v it_o rest_v without_o prejudging_a the_o same_o by_o any_o of_o your_o conclusion_n at_o this_o time_n see_v our_o parliament_n now_o so_o short_o approach_v and_o that_o we_o be_v well_o please_v and_o content_a that_o before_o the_o same_o such_o matter_n as_o be_v not_o yet_o full_o reason_v may_v be_v further_o consult_v upon_o and_o prepare_v to_o pass_v in_o form_n of_o law_n and_o the_o meet_a for_o that_o work_n to_o be_v express_o employ_v therein_o to_o the_o end_n the_o thing_n confer_v &_o agree_v upon_o may_v be_v present_v to_o our_o estate_n to_o be_v approve_v in_o our_o say_a parliament_n and_o due_a execution_n to_o follow_v for_o the_o advancement_n of_o god_n true_a religion_n and_o the_o repose_n of_o you_o and_o other_o our_o good_a subject_n the_o member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n within_o our_o realm_n and_o for_o this_o cause_n that_o you_o will_v not_o only_o be_v the_o author_n and_o persuader_n of_o common_a peace_n &_o concord_n among_o all_o of_o your_o own_o function_n but_o among_o all_o other_o our_o subject_n general_o as_o in_o the_o particular_a church_n where_o you_o travel_v that_o some_o man_n too_o busy_a to_o work_v the_o contrary_a effect_n may_v find_v themselves_o disappoint_v and_o that_o our_o whole_a estate_n by_o your_o exemple_n may_v be_v rather_o dispose_v to_o conform_v themselves_o to_o a_o godly_a &_o peaceable_a course_n of_o live_v which_o we_o be_v assure_v shall_v be_v please_v to_o god_n and_o to_o we_o it_o will_v be_v most_o acceptable_a as_o you_o may_v persuade_v yourselves_o of_o our_o willing_a inclination_n to_o set_v forward_o this_o action_n according_a to_o god_n will_v and_o word_n with_o all_o the_o diligence_n and_o good_a mean_n that_o may_v be_v use_v and_o so_o look_v to_o be_v inform_v of_o this_o our_o reasonable_a request_n &_o admonition_n we_o commit_v you_o unto_o the_o protection_n of_o god_n at_o our_o castle_n of_o sterlin_n july_n 5._o 1579._o it_o be_v direct_v to_o our_o trusty_a and_o well-beloved_a the_o minister_n and_o other_o of_o the_o church_n present_o assemble_v at_o edinburgh_n this_o letter_n be_v humble_o receive_v read_v and_o ordain_v to_o be_v register_v in_o answer_n after_o some_o day_n commission_n and_o full_a power_n be_v give_v first_o unto_o ten_o baron_n with_o all_o the_o commissioner_n of_o province_n and_o six_o other_o minister_n and_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v direct_v from_o the_o burgh_n or_o the_o most_o put_v of_o that_o number_n to_o conveen_v where_o the_o parliament_n shall_v hold_v two_o day_n before_o its_o meeting_n
of_o virginity_n be_v commend_v so_o that_o the_o humility_n of_o marriage_n be_v not_o despise_v catal._n test_n ver_fw-la lib._n 9_o trithem_n in_o catal._n illustr_n say_v that_o he_o write_v of_o redemption_n superfluous_o even_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o reprobate_n here_o trithem_n do_v he_o wrong_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o book_n itself_o which_o be_v print_v late_o at_o rotterdam_n with_o a_o preface_n of_o the_o learned_a doctor_n rivet_n or_o renatus_n deviraeus_n who_o have_v a_o part_n of_o his_o xxx_o epistle_n write_v unto_o gotteschalk_n answer_v unto_o that_o question_n whether_o we_o shall_v after_o resurrection_n behold_v god_n with_o bodily_a eye_n here_o he_o commend_v the_o modesty_n of_o augustine_n and_o deni_v that_o god_n can_v be_v see_v in_o his_o substance_n which_o privilege_n be_v reserve_v unto_o the_o spirit_n and_o then_o he_o say_v though_o i_o pay_v my_o debt_n of_o love_n unto_o thou_o much_o respect_a brother_n i_o can_v full_o discharge_v it_o but_o i_o exhort_v thou_o that_o thou_o spend_v not_o thy_o spirit_n any_o more_o on_o such_o question_n lest_o be_v take_v up_o with_o they_o more_o than_o be_v needful_a thou_o be_v less_o able_a to_o search_v and_o teach_v profitable_a thing_n ......_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o walk_v in_o the_o most_o large_a field_n of_o holy_a scripture_n and_o give_v ourselves_o whole_o unto_o the_o meditation_n of_o they_o and_o seek_v the_o lord_n face_n humble_o pious_o and_o continual_o for_o no_o good_a shall_v be_v lack_v unto_o they_o who_o seek_v he_o then_o that_o preface_n show_v that_o this_o abbot_n be_v not_o author_n of_o that_o book_n which_o trithemius_n and_o other_o do_v call_v he_o but_o another_o lupus_n who_o do_v live_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o wit_n 20._o lupus_fw-la servatus_fw-la a_o benedictine_n in_o the_o abbey_n of_o saint_n amand_n in_o the_o diocy_n of_o tornac_n write_v a_o treatise_n of_o freewill_n predestination_n and_o of_o the_o price_n of_o christ_n blood_n the_o sum_n of_o that_o treatise_n the_o author_n do_v collect_v in_o a_o epistle_n unto_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_a who_o have_v command_v he_o to_o write_v on_o that_o subject_n his_o word_n be_v god_n make_v adam_n upright_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v and_o in_o he_o he_o create_v we_o all_o original_o upright_a this_o father_n of_o mankind_n forsake_v natural_a uprightness_n none_n force_v he_o do_v sin_n so_o grievous_o that_o himself_o and_o in_o he_o he_o condemn_v we_o all_o which_o be_v beget_v of_o both_o sex_n god_n therefore_o make_v human_a nature_n excellent_o good_a but_o man_n have_v corrupt_v it_o miserable_o by_o his_o spontaneous_a fault_n adam_n be_v then_o as_o say_v bless_a ambrose_n and_o we_o all_o be_v in_o he_o but_o adam_n perish_v and_o we_o all_o perish_v in_o he_o let_v we_o praise_v god_n work_n and_o confess_v that_o nothing_o but_o punishment_n be_v due_a unto_o our_o fault_n but_o god_n to_o who_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v be_v and_o which_o be_v to_o come_v be_v present_a for_o he_o be_v what_o he_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o addition_n or_o diminution_n of_o his_o knowledge_n see_v he_o fore-knew_a the_o whole_a mass_n of_o mankind_n to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o sin_n will_v not_o hold_v from_o it_o the_o good_a of_o his_o creation_n see_v he_o can_v use_v well_o even_o evil_a thing_n and_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n he_o do_v choose_v out_o of_o that_o mass_n who_o by_o grace_n he_o will_v deliver_v from_o deserve_a punishment_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v as_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o before_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o world_n but_o other_o on_o who_o he_o vouchsafe_v not_o this_o grace_n of_o mercy_n he_o in_o just_a judgement_n leave_v they_o in_o damnation_n which_o they_o have_v deserve_v by_o sin_n and_o thus_o as_o the_o apostle_n say_v he_o have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v he_o show_v mercy_n on_o such_o who_o he_o assume_v by_o grace_n and_o he_o harden_v those_o who_o he_o do_v not_o mollify_v by_o the_o same_o grace_n but_o howbeit_o in_o hide_v yet_o in_o just_a judgement_n he_o leave_v they_o those_o then_o on_o who_o he_o show_v mercy_n be_v predestinate_v for_o glory_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v who_o he_o have_v foreknow_v he_o have_v predestinate_v and_o they_o be_v call_v the_o vessel_n of_o honour_n these_o do_v owe_v unto_o he_o what_o they_o be_v and_o what_o they_o have_v because_o they_o be_v make_v by_o his_o goodness_n when_o before_o they_o be_v not_o and_o of_o his_o bountifulness_n they_o be_v save_v when_o they_o be_v lose_v but_o those_o who_o he_o harden_v that_o be_v who_o he_o soften_v not_o which_o be_v leave_v in_o damnation_n which_o they_o have_v original_o and_o actual_o deserve_v be_v call_v vessel_n fit_v unto_o contumely_n and_o prepare_v for_o destruction_n that_o those_o be_v create_v it_o be_v the_o good_a gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o they_o be_v punish_v it_o be_v their_o own_o evil_n bless_a augustine_n in_o many_o of_o his_o book_n and_o especial_o in_o that_o he_o write_v last_o doubt_v not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v predestinate_v to_o punishment_n not_o mean_v a_o fatal_a necessity_n on_o they_o which_o shall_v perish_v but_o the_o unchangeable_a desertion_n of_o they_o which_o be_v forsake_v for_o he_o have_v read_v if_o god_n shut_v up_o a_o man_n who_o shall_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o also_o consider_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o none_o can_v correct_v what_o he_o have_v despise_v and_o that_o also_o i_o have_v give_v they_o over_o into_o the_o desire_n of_o their_o heart_n and_o they_o shall_v walk_v in_o their_o own_o device_n and_o i_o think_v he_o be_v lead_v into_o this_o thought_n especial_o by_o that_o testimony_n concern_v god_n which_o make_v what_o be_v to_o come_v and_o to_o who_o it_o be_v say_v thou_o will_v give_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o their_o work_n which_o indeed_o he_o will_v do_v to_o each_o one_o except_o who_o he_o bless_v by_o forgive_a their_o iniquity_n and_o hide_v their_o sin_n which_o advance_v his_o grace_n with_o high_a praise_n can_v say_v he_o deal_v not_o with_o we_o according_a to_o our_o sin_n nor_o reward_v we_o according_a to_o our_o iniquity_n with_o augustine_n do_v in_o other_o word_n agree_v jerom_n gregory_n beda_n isidore_n ..._o as_o i_o can_v easy_o demonstrate_v certain_o the_o first_o man_n do_v by_o sin_v lose_v freewill_n in_o good_a which_o he_o do_v despise_v and_o he_o hold_v it_o in_o evil_a which_o he_o choose_v but_o as_o if_o a_o man_n will_v he_o can_v kill_v himself_o by_o withhold_a food_n from_o himself_o but_o when_o he_o be_v kill_v he_o can_v make_v himself_o to_o live_v so_o man_n can_v willing_o lose_v the_o use_n of_o freewill_n in_o good_a by_o forsake_v it_o but_o he_o can_v resume_v it_o by_o his_o own_o strength_n even_o although_o he_o will_v therefore_o he_o shall_v not_o have_v freewill_n in_o good_a unless_o it_o be_v make_v free_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n our_o lord_n jesus_n which_o know_v as_o it_o be_v write_v what_o be_v in_o man_n declare_v this_o sound_o when_o he_o say_v without_o i_o you_o can_v do_v nothing_o to_o wit_n no_o good_a thing_n for_o he_o can_v be_v the_o author_n nor_o co-worker_n of_o ill_a who_o as_o john_n baptist_n say_v be_v the_o lamb_n of_o god_n and_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n to_o wit_n both_o which_o be_v and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o do_v and_o elsewhere_o if_o the_o son_n shall_v make_v you_o free_a you_o shall_v be_v true_o free_a ....._o god_n grace_n preven_v we_o as_o it_o be_v write_v my_o god_n his_o mercy_n shall_v prevene_v i_o that_o we_o may_v both_o will_n and_o begin_v and_o his_o grace_n follow_v we_o as_o it_o be_v write_v thy_o mercy_n shall_v follow_v i_o that_o in_o vain_a we_o will_v not_o or_o begin_v these_o than_o be_v principal_o of_o god_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o these_o testimony_n and_o but_o consequent_o we_o because_o they_o be_v do_v by_o we_o willing_o as_o it_o be_v write_v lord_n thou_o will_v give_v we_o peace_n for_o thou_o work_v all_o our_o work_n unto_o we_o ......._o last_o who_o god_n have_v redeem_v by_o his_o blood_n it_o be_v learn_v by_o the_o gospel_n in_o matthew_n the_o lord_n say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o for_o this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o for_o remission_n of_o sin_n and_o in_o mark_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o many_o but_o in_o luke_n this_o be_v the_o new_a testament_n of_o my_o blood_n which_o shall_v be_v shed_v for_o you_o then_o two_o
more_o contrary_a unto_o the_o apostle_n or_o more_o hateful_a unto_o christ_n jesus_n then_o to_o destroy_v soul_n by_o defraud_v they_o of_o the_o ministry_n ....._o in_o a_o word_n the_o holiness_n of_o the_o apostolical_a seat_n can_v do_v any_o thing_n but_o unto_o edification_n and_o not_o to_o destruction_n for_o this_o be_v the_o fullness_n of_o power_n to_o edification_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o call_v provision_n be_v not_o to_o edification_n but_o most_o manifest_a destruction_n the_o pope_n hear_v this_o letter_n foam_v as_o in_o a_o rage_n and_o swear_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n that_o he_o will_v hurl_v such_o a_o phrenetick_a wretch_n into_o confusion_n which_o dare_v so_o bold_o control_v his_o command_n and_o make_v he_o a_o fable_n unto_o the_o world_n be_v not_o the_o king_n of_o england_n our_o vassal_n yea_o and_o slave_n who_o i_o at_o my_o nod_n may_v thrust_v into_o prison_n the_o cardinal_n namely_o aegidius_n a_o spaniard_n and_o some_o other_o touch_v in_o conscience_n can_v scarce_o appease_v his_o fury_n and_o among_o other_o word_n they_o say_v to_o confess_v the_o truth_n unto_o your_o holiness_n it_o be_v true_a what_o he_o say_v and_o we_o can_v condemn_v he_o for_o it_o he_o be_v a_o catholic_n man_n more_o holy_a and_o religious_a than_o we_o ourselves_o be_v and_o as_o it_o be_v judge_v among_o all_o the_o prelate_n there_o be_v none_o better_o nor_o his_o equal_a this_o be_v not_o unknown_a universal_o nor_o can_v our_o contradiction_n avail_v against_o he_o wherefore_o we_o think_v best_a to_o pass_v by_o such_o a_o thing_n lest_o perhaps_o some_o tumult_n arise_v thereupon_o especial_o see_v it_o be_v manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n that_o once_o must_v come_v a_o defection_n and_o departure_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o robert_n lie_v on_o his_o death_n bed_n he_o say_v unto_o the_o brethren_n come_v to_o visit_v he_o heresid_n be_v a_o opinion_n take_v up_o by_o human_a sense_n contrary_a white_a heresy_n white_a unto_o the_o holy_a scripture_n open_o avow_v and_o pertinacious_o maintain_v be_v not_o innocentius_n therefore_o a_o heretic_n and_o since_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o antichrist_n the_o pope_n a_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n world_n to_o save_v soul_n may_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v just_o call_v the_o antichrist_n who_o fear_v not_o to_o destroy_v soul_n the_o pope_n do_v impudent_o annul_v the_o privilege_n of_o his_o ancestor_n ...._o and_o therefore_o the_o contemner_n shall_v be_v contemn_v according_a to_o that_o say_n of_o esay_n woe_n to_o thou_o who_o despise_v ....._o matth._n parisien_n 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1240._o a_o carthusian_n monk_n at_o cambridge_n say_v open_o before_o otho_n the_o legate_n gregory_n be_v not_o the_o head_n of_o the_o chutch_n but_o there_o be_v another_o head_n thereof_o satan_n be_v loose_v the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n gregory_n which_o be_v call_v pope_n defile_v the_o church_n and_o the_o world_n the_o legate_n say_v unto_o he_o be_v not_o power_n give_v from_o above_o unto_o the_o pope_n to_o loose_v and_o bind_v soul_n and_o to_o exerce_fw-la the_o charge_n of_o peter_n on_o earth_n the_o monk_n reply_v how_o can_v i_o think_v that_o such_o power_n as_o be_v give_v unto_o peter_n be_v give_v to_o a_o simoniack_a and_o usurer_n yea_o and_o who_o be_v defile_v with_o great_a crime_n the_o legate_n do_v blush_v for_o shame_n and_o say_v we_o may_v not_o strive_v in_o word_n with_o a_o fool_n idem_fw-la 10._o seval_fw-fr archbishop_n of_o york_n follow_v in_o the_o same_o footstep_n when_o he_o see_v the_o pride_n of_o the_o pope_n usurp_a and_o tyrannize_v above_o the_o king_n he_o be_v astonish_v and_o in_o the_o grief_n of_o his_o heart_n he_o entreat_v pope_n alexander_n the_o iv_o by_o letter_n that_o he_o will_v leave_v off_o from_o such_o daily_a enormity_n or_o at_o least_o refrain_v himself_o and_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o good_a man_n that_o he_o will_v feed_v christ_n lamb_n as_o peter_n do_v and_o not_o pull_v the_o skin_n off_o they_o and_o devour_v they_o like_o a_o hungry_a wolf_n the_o pope_n have_v give_v the_o fat_a of_o his_o benefice_n unto_o some_o wanton_a young_a man_n and_o ignorant_a of_o the_o language_n as_o he_o make_v jordanus_n dean_n of_o york_n etc._n etc._n seval_n will_v admit_v none_o of_o they_o wherefore_o the_o pope_n excommunicate_v he_o with_o bell_n and_o candle_n he_o can_v suffer_v these_o ceremony_n but_o he_o can_v not_o suffer_v stranger_n to_o be_v set_v over_o the_o people_n and_o the_o more_o he_o be_v curse_v by_o the_o pope_n he_o be_v the_o more_o belove_v of_o the_o people_n and_o they_o do_v bless_v he_o yet_o quiet_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o roman_n although_o he_o be_v not_o murder_v yet_o for_o his_o suffering_n he_o be_v call_v a_o martyr_n idem_fw-la ad_fw-la an._n 1257._o 11._o matthew_z of_o paris_n who_o i_o have_v often_o name_v be_v a_o benedictine_n of_o saint_n alban_n he_o write_v the_o history_n of_o england_n from_o the_o day_n of_o william_n the_o conqueror_n until_o the_o year_n of_o his_o own_o death_n 1260._o where_o he_o describe_v how_o other_o speak_v against_o the_o abomination_n of_o antichrist_n to_o the_o end_n that_o posterity_n may_v know_v and_o abhor_v it_o and_o thereby_o he_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v his_o own_o thought_n as_o here_o and_o there_o he_o express_v himself_o e._n g._n ad_fw-la an._n 1237._o he_o say_v it_o be_v manifest_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n alas_o have_v deserve_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n for_o the_o guide_v thereof_o seek_v not_o the_o devotion_n of_o people_n but_o their_o full_a purse_n not_o to_o gain_v soul_n unto_o god_n but_o to_o collect_v revenue_n to_o themselves_o to_o oppress_v the_o religious_a and_o many_o way_n impudent_o to_o catch_v other_o man_n good_n ......_o hence_o ariseth_z grumble_a among_o man_n and_o the_o wrath_n of_o god_n be_v provoke_v daily_o ad_fw-la an._n 1238._o he_o call_v the_o pope_n the_o successor_n but_o not_o the_o imitator_n of_o peter_n ad_fw-la an._n 1245._o he_o say_v the_o pope_n send_v unto_o the_o king_n of_o arragon_n and_o then_o unto_o the_o king_n of_o england_n crave_v that_o he_o may_v come_v and_o abide_v in_o their_o kingdom_n and_o the_o nobility_n do_v refuse_v because_o the_o papal_a court_n be_v so_o infamous_a that_o the_o strength_n thereof_o go_v up_o unto_o the_o cloud_n ad_fw-la an._n 1251._o he_o say_v the_o threaten_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v be_v think_v to_o be_v fulfil_v unless_o there_o be_v a_o depart_a the_o son_n of_o perdition_n shall_v not_o be_v reveal_v behold_v that_o man_n heart_n depart_v and_o not_o their_o body_n from_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v enrage_v like_o a_o stepfather_n and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v cruel_a in_o persecute_v like_o a_o stepmother_n 12._o john_n russel_n a_o english_a gentleman_n who_o marry_v the_o widow_n of_o walter_n cumin_n earl_n of_o lenox_n about_o the_o year_n 1262._o afterward_o he_o purchase_v letter_n from_o the_o pope_n to_o summon_v a_o number_n of_o scot_n to_o appear_v in_o england_n before_o the_o legate_n for_o slander_v his_o wife_n of_o witchcraft_n and_o poison_v her_o first_o husband_n the_o scot_n despise_v the_o citation_n allege_v their_o ancient_a privilege_n that_o scotch_a man_n can_v be_v charge_v to_o answer_v without_o their_o own_o country_n and_o so_o the_o summon_v turn_v to_o nothing_o say_v buchan_n hist_o lib._n 7._o 13._o within_o some_o few_o year_n king_n alexander_n the_o iii_o be_v encumber_v with_o precedency_n the_o lord_n and_o bishop_n strive_v for_o precedency_n the_o pride_n of_o priest_n and_o monk_n say_v the_o same_o author_n there_o he_o understand_v certain_o bishop_n and_o abbot_n which_o be_v enrich_v say_v he_o by_o former_a king_n and_o enjoy_v long_a prosperity_n begin_v to_o grow_v rank_n and_o will_v go_v before_o the_o nobility_n as_o in_o wealth_n so_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n or_o at_o least_o be_v equal_a with_o they_o the_o noble_a man_n take_v this_o in_o ill_a part_n and_o deal_v rough_o with_o they_o wherefore_o they_o complain_v unto_o the_o king_n whether_o he_o think_v these_o injury_n not_o to_o be_v so_o heinous_a as_o the_o priest_n call_v they_o or_o if_o he_o think_v that_o they_o be_v not_o without_o cause_n yet_o he_o make_v no_o account_n of_o they_o therefore_o the_o bishop_n do_v excommunicate_v all_o the_o noble_a man_n except_v the_o king_n only_o and_o with_o many_o threat_n do_v prepare_v themselves_o to_o go_v unto_o rome_n then_o the_o king_n calling_z to_z mind_n what_o broil_v tho._n becket_n have_v raise_v in_o england_n by_o his_o ambition_n call_v the_o bishop_n from_o their_o journey_n and_o compel_v the_o nobility_n to_o yield_v unto_o their_o pride_n thus_o the_o spiritual_a
therefore_o the_o see_v be_v vacant_a so_o at_o funda_fw-la they_o choose_v clemens_n the_o vii_o bishop_n of_o camerak_fw-mi a_o french_a man_n this_o schism_n continue_v thirty_o nine_o year_n crantz_n in_o pope_n a_o long_a schism_n between_o the_o pope_n saxo._n lib._n 10._o cap_n 4._o say_v the_o emperor_n be_v wont_a and_o yet_o do_v carry_v in_o their_o colour_n a_o double_a head_a eagle_n and_o now_o the_o pope_n begin_v to_o worship_v a_o double_a head_a mitre_n robert_n budeus_n a_o noble_a man_n of_o britain_n in_o france_n be_v in_o the_o bound_n of_o the_o roman_n with_o 2000_o man_n clemens_n allure_v he_o on_o his_o side_n thus_o trouble_n begin_v charles_n the_o v._o king_n of_o france_n the_o wise_a prince_n of_o those_o time_n say_v frossard_n assemble_v his_o estate_n especial_o the_o clergy_n to_o inquire_v which_o of_o the_o two_o shall_v be_v accept_v opinion_n be_v different_a the_o prelate_n the_o king_n brethren_n and_o many_o divine_n be_v for_o clemens_n the_o king_n approve_v their_o sentence_n immediate_o it_o be_v proclaim_v and_o clemens_n make_v his_o residence_n at_o avenion_n there_o follow_v he_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n the_o prince_n of_o savoy_n the_o duke_n of_o milan_n the_o queen_n of_o naples_n and_o the_o king_n of_o scotland_n the_o emperor_n charles_n dissemble_v although_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o empire_n follow_v urban_n lewis_n earl_n of_o flanders_n say_v wrong_n be_v do_v to_o urban_n the_o hammonians_n yield_v to_o neither_o of_o the_o two_o frossard_n lib._n 2._o what_o trouble_n be_v then_o in_o all_o the_o church_n and_o every_o nation_n partake_v thereof_o priest_n be_v imprison_v by_o the_o adverse_a party_n cardinal_n be_v rack_v and_o kill_v and_o many_o battle_n be_v fight_v for_o those_o two_o the_o one_o call_v the_o other_o a_o schismatic_a and_o heretic_n the_o son_n of_o belial_n and_o the_o antichrist_n it_o will_v require_v a_o volume_n to_o show_v their_o bloody_a fact_n then_o be_v great_a strife_n for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o sicily_n johanna_n the_o queen_n have_v marry_v four_o husband_n the_o cousin_n and_o heir_n of_o her_o husband_n pretend_v right_a when_o she_o can_v not_o eschew_v the_o trouble_n of_o pretension_n she_o render_v the_o kingdom_n unto_o pope_n clemens_n to_o dispose_v of_o at_o his_o pleasure_n urban_n give_v it_o to_o a_o hungarian_a charles_n the_o brother_n son_n of_o her_o first_o husband_n on_o condition_n that_o pregnan_n his_o brother_n son_n shall_v have_v campania_n clemens_n give_v the_o kingdom_n to_o lewis_n duke_n of_o anjou_n an._n 1380._o the_o people_n receive_v charles_n lewis_n go_v thither_o with_o a_o army_n of_o 30000_o man_n both_o pretend_v right_a from_o the_o pope_n and_o lewis_n allege_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o queen_n then_o defunct_a the_o neapolitan_n say_v that_o the_o queen_n can_v not_o dispose_v of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o clemens_n be_v not_o pope_n calabria_n and_o some_o other_o receive_v lewis_n who_o continue_v there_o and_o die_v an._n 1383._o then_o charles_n be_v only_a king_n and_o refuse_v to_o give_v campania_n unto_o pregnan_n urban_n summon_v charles_n to_o appear_v at_o nuceria_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o cast_v seven_o cardinal_n into_o prison_n and_o create_v 39_o cardinal_n of_o his_o own_o kindred_n charles_n come_v with_o a_o army_n to_o the_o place_n but_o urban_n flee_v by_o sea_n into_o genua_n and_o take_v the_o seven_o imprison_a cardinal_n with_o he_o of_o who_o he_o cause_v five_o to_o be_v shut_v up_o in_o factis_fw-la and_o to_o be_v drown_v in_o the_o sea_n when_o he_o hear_v that_o charles_n be_v dead_a he_o return_v unto_o naples_n with_o intention_n to_o defraud_v his_o son_n but_o when_o he_o can_v not_o prevail_v he_o go_v to_o rome_n he_o send_v his_o bull_n from_o genua_n into_o england_n for_o he_o can_v not_o find_v a_o great_a enemy_n against_o france_n say_v frossard_n offer_v remission_n of_o sin_n unto_o all_o who_o will_v fight_v against_o the_o clementines_n and_o give_v liberty_n unto_o the_o king_n to_o give_v assignation_n of_o the_o tithe_n of_o all_o church-rent_n except_o the_o primate_fw-la unto_o the_o nobleman_n for_o their_o charge_n and_o he_o prevail_v with_o some_o preacher_n to_o persuade_v the_o people_n they_o be_v allure_v with_o fair_a promise_n think_v themselves_o happy_a to_o die_v in_o such_o war_n such_o be_v the_o time_n say_v frossard_n in_o a_o short_a space_n by_o tithe_n and_o voluntary_a offering_n be_v gather_v 2500000_o french_a crown_n and_o for_o the_o more_o assurance_n the_o pope_n will_v have_v a_o bishop_n to_o be_v general_n and_o henry_n spencer_n bishop_n of_o norwich_n be_v name_v the_o like_a bull_n be_v send_v to_o lusitania_n to_o excite_v they_o against_o spain_n for_o side_v with_o clemens_n a_o letter_n of_o richard_n the_o ii_o be_v extant_a say_v io._n fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon●_n unto_o king_n a_o remarkable_a letter_n by_o all_o king_n pope_n urban_n exhort_v he_o to_o have_v more_o respect_n unto_o the_o unity_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n and_o show_v that_o prince_n shall_v coerce_v such_o mis-order_n in_o the_o church_n as_o moses_n rebuke_v aaron_n solomon_n put_v down_o abiathar_n otho_n the_o i._o remove_v john_n the_o xiii_o ...._o and_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n say_v the_o king_n why_o may_v not_o king_n now_o bridle_v roman_a bishop_n if_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o fault_n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n so_o require_v and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o prince_n to_o restrain_v the_o outrage_n of_o a_o pope_n though_o he_o be_v lawful_o choose_v he_o may_v oppress_v the_o church_n change_n christendom_n into_o heathen_n and_o make_v the_o suffering_n of_o christ_n in_o vain_a or_o else_o god_n have_v not_o provide_v well_o in_o all_o thing_n for_o his_o church_n on_o earth_n by_o service_n of_o man_n to_o withstand_v danger_n and_o the_o pope_n shall_v consider_v these_o thing_n serious_o lest_o he_o cause_v all_o the_o prince_n to_o rise_v against_o he_o ...._o for_o certain_o the_o world_n will_v not_o be_v oppress_v by_o a_o prelate_n and_o will_v rather_o leave_v the_o romish_a church_n desolate_a etc._n etc._n but_o affection_n blunt_v all_o admonition_n urban_n know_v what_o gain_n be_v reap_v by_o the_o jubilee_n therefore_o he_o ordain_v it_o to_o be_v keep_v every_o 33_o year_n because_o christ_n live_v but_o 33_o year_n so_o he_o proclaim_v and_o keep_v it_o an._n 1383._o he_o cause_v his_o cubicular_a john_n de_fw-fr therano_n to_o write_v a_o book_n on_o these_o word_n give_v to_o caesar_n what_o be_v caesar_n etc._n etc._n the_o scope_n of_o the_o book_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o those_o word_n have_v place_n only_o for_o a_o time_n and_o after_o christ_n ascension_n they_o be_v out_o of_o date_n because_o he_o say_v if_o i_o be_v lift_v up_o to_o heaven_n i_o will_v draw_v all_o thing_n after_o i_o that_o be_v i_o will_v draw_v all_o thing_n to_o the_o empire_n of_o pope_n who_o from_o thence_o shall_v be_v lord_n of_o lord_n in_o the_o year_n 1383._o the_o clementines_n besiege_v he_o in_o a_o castle_n and_o have_v take_v he_o if_o the_o soldier_n have_v not_o mutine_v for_o want_v of_o pay_n nor_o can_v clemens_n afford_v they_o 20000._o frank_v urban_n sit_v eleven_o year_n and_o die_v an._n 1389._o very_o few_o bewail_v his_o death_n because_o he_o be_v so_o rude_a and_o intrectable_a platin._n then_o pope_n clemens_n desire_v the_o king_n to_o interpose_v his_o authority_n with_o the_o emperor_n and_o other_o prince_n that_o for_o conserve_n peace_n no_o other_o pope_n be_v choose_v but_o he_o be_v disappoint_v say_v frossard_n 11._o boniface_n the_o ix_o be_v choose_v at_o rome_n one_o altogether_o ignorant_a of_o literature_n and_o so_o unfit_a for_o the_o affair_n of_o court_n that_o he_o scarce_o understand_v the_o proposition_n which_o be_v scan_v before_o he_o and_o in_o his_o time_n ignorance_n be_v in_o price_n say_v theod._n a_o niem_n the_o secretary_n of_o many_o pope_n morn_n in_o myster_n yet_o he_o be_v like_a unto_o boniface_n the_o viii_o as_o in_o name_n so_o in_o craftiness_n and_o when_o the_o roman_n begin_v to_o show_v their_o discontentedness_n he_o like_o another_o tarqvinius_n cut_v off_o the_o chastole_n high_a head_n laur._n valla_n in_o declam_n contra_fw-la donat._n constant_n he_o open_o profess_a simony_n and_o will_v admit_v neither_o cardinal_n nor_o bishop_n until_o they_o deliver_v money_n at_o his_o pleasure_n or_o at_o least_o a_o annate_fw-it morn_n pag._n 490._o 12._o benedict_n the_o xiii_o be_v choose_v at_o avenion_n after_o the_o death_n of_o clemens_n an._n 1393._o upon_o express_a condition_n that_o if_o the_o king_n of_o france_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o election_n another_o shall_v be_v choose_v the_o king_n hear_v the_o legate_n of_o both_o pope_n but_o
be_v tie_v unto_o we_o you_o reform_v your_o clergy_n and_o put_v away_o these_o abuse_n in_o their_o clothes_n shoe_n hair_z and_o conversation_n or_o if_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v that_o you_o command_v the_o fruit_n of_o their_o benefice_n to_o be_v bring_v into_o our_o exchequer_n and_o by_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n we_o will_v employ_v they_o unto_o honest_a use_n when_o the_o legate_n hear_v these_o word_n he_o go_v present_o away_o io._n naucler_n have_v this_o but_o he_o show_v not_o what_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n do_v in_o obedience_n unto_o the_o charge_n nor_o how_o the_o pope_n be_v take_v with_o the_o answer_n but_o only_o he_o show_v that_o the_o next_o year_n pope_n innocentius_n send_v unto_o john_n the_o salverd_a a_o canon_n of_o spira_n to_o gather_v the_o half_a of_o all_o the_o fruit_n of_o benefice_n within_o that_o diocy_n whether_o vacant_a or_o shall_v be_v vacant_a for_o two_o year_n unto_o the_o pope_n use_n this_o charles_n do_v more_o good_a in_o bohemia_n then_o in_o all_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o empire_n he_o erect_v a_o school_n of_o liberal_a science_n at_o prague_n he_o build_v the_o new_a city_n and_o a_o glorious_a palace_n and_o many_o monastery_n and_o he_o make_v the_o bishop_n a_o free_a archbishop_n whereas_o before_o he_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n he_o and_o his_o empress_n go_v to_o rome_n to_o kiss_v pope_n urban_n foot_n and_o return_v within_o three_o month_n he_o die_v an._n 1378._o in_o constantinople_n after_o andronicus_n his_o son_n calo-johannes_n do_v reign_v his_o uncle_n and_o tutor_n john_n catacuzen_n do_v usurp_v the_o government_n and_o they_o both_o be_v call_v emperor_n and_o in_o the_o end_n calo-john_n be_v sole_a emperor_n this_o unhappy_a john_n send_v for_o the_o turk_n to_o come_v unto_o his_o aid_n soliman_n then_o do_v possess_v all_o that_o in_o asia_n have_v appertain_v unto_o the_o empire_n and_o come_v over_o the_o hellespont_n but_o can_v never_o be_v beat_v back_o again_o he_o take_v g●llipolis_n and_o other_o city_n on_o the_o coast_n and_o then_o hadrianople_n lazarus_n despote_n of_o servia_n or_o mysia_n inferior_a and_o mark_v despote_n of_o bulgaria_n and_o some_o other_o prince_n go_v against_o he_o an._n 1363._o and_o be_v overthrow_v john_n come_v into_o italy_n france_n and_o germany_n for_o help_v against_o the_o turk_n but_o when_o he_o can_v obtain_v none_o he_o return_v and_o seek_v way_n to_o fight_v under_o the_o turk_n colour_n in_o asia_n laon._n chalcocon_n lib._n 1._o after_o that_o time_n soliman_n become_v lord_n of_o many_o christian_n land_n in_o europe_n and_o his_o brother_n amurathes_n conquer_v more_o and_o so_o that_o empire_n decay_v yearly_o 5._o wenceslaus_n succeed_v unto_o his_o father_n be_v call_v wretchless_n and_o effeminate_a whether_o his_o mind_n be_v set_v on_o devotion_n or_o that_o he_o will_v not_o meddle_v with_o the_o two-headed_a beast_n for_o then_o begin_v the_o great_a schism_n of_o the_o two_o pope_n it_o be_v uncertain_a and_o the_o civil_a war_n which_o begin_v in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n do_v then_o increase_v the_o vicar_n which_o be_v appoint_v to_o govern_v the_o imperial_a town_n in_o italy_n become_v absolute_a and_o so_o do_v other_o in_o germany_n usurp_v liberty_n the_o elector_n see_v that_o he_o have_v no_o care_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o that_o especial_o he_o favour_v john_n huss_n conspire_v by_o instigation_n of_o pope_n boniface_n the_o ix_o to_o choose_v another_o but_o they_o can_v not_o agree_v for_o two_o be_v choose_v an._n 1400._o robert_n count_n palatine_n and_o jodok_v marquis_n of_o moravia_n jodok_v die_v within_o six_o month_n and_o than_o robert_n be_v sole_a emperor_n then_o wenceslaus_n make_v no_o account_n and_o content_v himself_o with_o bohemia_n live_v yet_o twenty_o year_n emmanuel_n the_o second_o son_n of_o calo-john_n by_o the_o aid_n of_o bajazet_n succeed_v unto_o his_o father_n and_o pay_v he_o yearly_a 30000_o crown_n and_o do_v willing_o quit_v philadelphia_n andronicus_n the_o elder_a brother_n be_v glad_a to_o take_v pay_v of_o the_o turk_n laon._n chalcocon_n lib._n 2._o the_o turk_n by_o these_o mean_n and_o because_o of_o the_o dissension_n in_o italy_n and_o germany_n especial_o of_o the_o schism_n between_o the_o anti-popes_n have_v the_o more_o opportunity_n to_o subdue_v bulgaria_n walachia_n and_o carry_v great_a spoil_n out_o of_o hungary_n sigismond_n king_n of_o hungary_n with_o the_o aid_n of_o german_n french_a and_o english_a about_o 100000_o man_n fight_v against_o 300000_o turk_n and_o be_v overthrow_v an._n 1397._o because_o emmanuel_n will_v not_o follow_v bajazet_n and_o have_v make_v a_o league_n with_o some_o prince_n against_o he_o bajazet_n go_v to_o besiege_v constantinople_n and_o have_v take_v it_o if_o the_o lord_n have_v not_o raise_v up_o tamerlan_n king_n of_o massagetes_n in_o tartary_n by_o the_o solicitation_n of_o some_o turkish_a duke_n which_o be_v rob_v by_o bajazet_n tamerlan_n be_v admire_v for_o his_o power_n and_o success_n he_o subdue_v persia_n media_n assyria_n armenia_n and_o all_o asia_n between_o tanais_n and_o nilus_n bajazet_n leave_v the_o siege_n of_o constantinople_n to_o fight_v he_o at_o prusa_n where_o bajazet_n be_v take_v in_o the_o 25_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n tamerlan_n ask_v he_o what_o he_o will_v do_v if_o he_o have_v he_o in_o that_o case_n the_o turk_n answer_v proud_o i_o will_v put_v thou_o in_o a_o iron_n cage_n ......_o tamerlan_n do_v so_o with_o he_o and_o carry_v he_o through_o asia_n until_o he_o die_v the_o son_n of_o bajazet_n have_v civil_a war_n a_o long_a time_n and_o kill_v one_o another_o so_o the_o christian_n in_o europe_n have_v rest_n from_o the_o turk_n until_o amurath_n the_o ii_o subdue_v mustapha_n the_o four_o son_n of_o bajazet_n and_o recover_v the_o former_a conquest_n he_o return_v against_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o day_n of_o john_n the_o elder_a son_n of_o emmanuel_n because_o he_o have_v aid_v mustapha_n laon._n chalcocon_n chap._n iii_o of_o divers_a country_n 1._o in_o this_o century_n gross_a be_v the_o darkness_n both_o of_o ignorance_n and_o viciousness_n light_n in_o the_o gross_a darkness_n be_v some_o spark_n of_o light_n in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n the_o preacher_n do_v not_o teach_v the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n but_o seek_v their_o own_o gain_n and_o the_o people_n can_v not_o but_o be_v ignorant_a nevertheless_o god_n raise_v some_o in_o all_o estate_n to_o note_v and_o rebuke_v the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n as_o follow_v it_o be_v not_o a_o small_a furtherance_n that_o in_o the_o council_n at_o vienna_n an._n 1511._o it_o be_v decree_v that_o in_o all_o academy_n there_o shall_v be_v some_o expert_a in_o the_o hebrew_n chaldee_n and_o arabic_a language_n who_o shall_v not_o only_o teach_v these_o language_n but_o translate_v their_o book_n into_o latin_a for_o the_o large_a spread_n of_o god_n word_n and_o the_o more_o easy_a conversion_n of_o infidel_n by_o the_o benefit_n of_o these_o language_n the_o light_n of_o god_n word_n begin_v to_o shine_v more_o clear_o and_o the_o commentary_n of_o nic._n de_fw-fr lyra_n on_o the_o bible_n be_v a_o good_a help_n although_o in_o many_o thing_n comply_v with_o the_o time_n and_o some_o greek_n flee_v from_o the_o oppression_n of_o the_o turk_n come_v into_o the_o west_n and_o teach_v the_o greek_a tongue_n and_o translate_v some_o of_o the_o father_n 2._o a_o show_n and_o hope_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n be_v make_v by_o pope_n clemens_n the_o v._o in_o the_o council_n at_o vienna_n it_o be_v clear_a therefore_o that_o the_o corruption_n be_v know_v by_o the_o people_n and_o a_o reformation_n be_v wish_v clemens_n give_v order_n to_o durand_n auditor_n rotae_fw-la and_o bishop_n mimaten_v to_o set_v in_o order_n some_o reformation_n overture_n of_o reformation_n article_n of_o reformation_n to_o be_v propound_v in_o the_o council_n the_o treatise_n be_v extant_a with_o this_o title_n de_fw-fr concilio_fw-la celebrando_fw-la print_v lutetiae_n an._n 1545._o he_o begin_v at_o the_o roman_a clergy_n say_v they_o have_v follow_v the_o way_n of_o balaam_n who_o love_v the_o hire_n of_o iniquity_n and_o be_v rebuke_v for_o his_o madness_n ......_o which_o have_v happen_v also_o in_o these_o day_n see_v so_o foolish_a and_o unorderly_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o churchman_n who_o shall_v be_v a_o light_n unto_o other_o they_o have_v offend_v the_o sense_n even_o of_o pagan_n and_o jew_n so_o that_o such_o as_o have_v no_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a reason_n do_v abhor_v their_o madness_n and_o be_v wise_a reprove_v their_o wicked_a way_n he_o show_v what_o may_v be_v the_o way_n of_o reformation_n to_o wit_n in_o the_o holy_a council_n king_n and_o bishop_n shall_v conspire_v unto_o these_o thing_n 1._o recourse_n must_v be_v make_v unto_o the_o
lewis_n who_o die_v in_o a_o battle_n against_o the_o turk_n an._n 1528._o and_o then_o the_o covenant_n be_v accomplish_v and_o the_o house_n of_o austria_n be_v king_n of_o hungary_n after_o the_o death_n of_o ladislaus_n be_v strife_n also_o for_o the_o duchy_n of_o austria_n three_o brethren_n the_o emperor_n albert_n and_o sigismond_n contend_v for_o it_o they_o do_v name_v some_o umpire_n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n but_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o judge_v against_o the_o mighty_a frederick_n carry_v it_o but_o in_o the_o year_n 1463._o albert_n besiege_v his_o brother_n in_o the_o castle_n of_o vienna_n so_o straight_o that_o the_o emperor_n send_v for_o relief_n unto_o george_n king_n of_o bohemia_n who_o he_o be_v wont_a to_o despise_v as_o a_o heretic_n and_o he_o send_v unto_o pope_n pius_fw-la entreat_v he_o that_o he_o will_v not_o accurse_v george_n with_o his_o thunder_n the_o pope_n yield_v because_o of_o that_o necessity_n say_v naucler_n and_o the_o bohemian_o deliver_v the_o emperor_n but_o so_o wary_o that_o he_o neither_o do_v perish_v nor_o be_v victorious_a in_o the_o year_n 1466._o frederick_n go_v to_o rome_n some_o say_v to_o perform_v a_o vow_n other_o say_v to_o treat_v with_o the_o pope_n concern_v war_n against_o the_o turk_n whatsoever_o be_v his_o purpose_n he_o return_v in_o peace_n and_o by_o his_o mean_n peace_n continue_v in_o italy_n and_o germany_n at_o that_o time_n charles_n surname_v the_o hardy_a duke_n of_o burgundy_n flanders_n gelderland_n holland_n etc._n etc._n dare_v hold_v all_o the_o world_n for_o his_o enemy_n and_o spare_v not_o to_o invade_v and_o take_v town_n where_o he_o please_v he_o have_v a_o conference_n with_o the_o emperor_n at_o lutzemburg_n and_o among_o other_o purpose_n he_o demand_v the_o title_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o naples_n because_o it_o sometime_o have_v belong_v unto_o the_o empire_n and_o now_o he_o intend_v to_o make_v conquest_n of_o italy_n the_o emperor_n know_v and_o mislike_v his_o ambition_n give_v he_o fair_a word_n and_o depart_v the_o city_n in_o the_o night_n wherefore_o the_o duke_n besiege_v colein_n the_o emperor_n come_v against_o he_o with_o a_o great_a army_n yet_o desirous_a of_o peace_n they_o be_v both_o induce_v to_o agree_v and_o charles_n leave_v the_o bound_n of_o the_o empire_n but_o he_o can_v not_o live_v in_o peace_n he_o intend_v to_o march_v into_o italy_n and_o to_o molest_v the_o swisser_n in_o his_o way_n but_o he_o be_v kill_v by_o they_o in_o the_o year_n 1476._o then_o the_o french_a the_o swisser_n and_o other_o repossess_v themselves_o of_o what_o charles_n have_v take_v from_o they_o and_o maximilian_n the_o emperor_n son_n marry_v the_o only_a daughter_n of_o charles_n and_o keep_v his_o inheritance_n not_o without_o trouble_n in_o the_o year_n 1480._o mahumet_n have_v conquer_v the_o island_n of_o archipelagus_n invade_v italy_n his_o bassa_n acomath_n take_v otranto_n and_o some_o other_o place_n all_o italy_n be_v in_o fear_n mahumet_n die_v and_o his_o son_n bajazeth_n be_v molest_v with_o civil_a war_n so_o italy_n be_v free_v in_o the_o year_n 1486._o frederick_n cause_v his_o son_n maximilian_n to_o be_v choose_v king_n of_o the_o roman_n and_o make_v several_a statute_n under_o great_a penalty_n against_o all_o that_o shall_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o germany_n the_o year_n 1492._o be_v remarkable_a first_o for_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n innocentius_n and_o election_n of_o alexander_n the_o vi_o next_o for_o expel_v the_o moor_n out_o of_o spain_n by_o ferdinand_n king_n of_o castille_n above_o 700._o year_n after_o their_o first_o arrival_n it_o be_v write_v that_o 224000._o family_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v banish_v three_o under_o the_o name_n of_o the_o same_o ferdinand_n christopher_n columbus_n sail_v westward_o discover_v the_o isle_n azore_n as_o americus_n vespusius_n in_o the_o year_n 1499._o discover_v the_o west-indies_n which_o after_o he_o be_v call_v america_n pope_n alexander_n give_v that_o kingdom_n unto_o ferdinand_n when_o this_o gift_n be_v report_v unto_o artabaliba_n king_n of_o peru_n he_o say_v that_o pope_n must_v be_v a_o fool_n who_o give_v unto_o another_o what_o he_o never_o have_v or_o certain_o he_o be_v impudent_a and_o unjust_a who_o give_v another_o man_n land_n unto_o stranger_n and_o stir_v up_o man_n to_o the_o shed_n of_o innocent_a blood_n as_o benzo_n &_o lopez_n do_v record_n when_o all_o the_o empire_n be_v in_o peace_n frederick_n die_v an._n 1493._o the_o reign_n of_o his_o son_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o next_o century_n chap._n iii_o of_o divers_a country_n 1._o it_o be_v tedious_a to_o repeat_v all_o the_o strange_a eclipse_n of_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n sign_n ominous_a sign_n which_o be_v record_v to_o have_v be_v in_o this_o century_n portend_v the_o wondrous_a darkness_n of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o these_o time_n as_o indeed_o it_o surpass_v all_o other_o since_o no_o age_n have_v see_v more_o ungodly_a pope_n nor_o great_a ignorance_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o inundation_n of_o water_n the_o frequent_a pestilence_n and_o famine_n do_v also_o proclaim_v the_o wrath_n of_o god_n against_o the_o iniquity_n of_o man_n but_o the_o more_o god_n do_v strike_v the_o stithies_n of_o their_o heart_n they_o become_v the_o hard_a except_o a_o small_a number_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o ungodly_a multitude_n who_o therefore_o be_v have_v in_o reproach_n and_o be_v persecute_v 2._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o century_n god_n make_v some_o preparation_n for_o a_o knowledge_n help_v of_o knowledge_n reformation_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o it_o more_o which_o be_v two_o mighty_a help_n of_o knowledge_n first_o some_o greek_n come_v into_o italy_n to_o wit_n emanuel_n chrysoloras_n and_o argyropulus_fw-la two_o byzantine_n musurus_fw-la cretensis_n john_n laicaris_n theodor_n gaza_n george_n trapezuntius_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o greek_a language_n have_v scarce_o be_v hear_v in_o italy_n the_o space_n of_o 700._o year_n but_o then_o both_o greek_a and_o latin_a school_n be_v multiply_v and_o they_o translate_v some_o greek_a father_n into_o latin_a as_o trapezuntius_fw-la translate_v some_o work_n of_o cyril_n alexandrin_n of_o eusebius_n etc._n etc._n their_o disciple_n be_v leonard_n aretin_n guarin_n veronen_n pogius_n florentin_n philelphus_n etc._n etc._n in_o emulation_n of_o they_o be_v famous_a in_o the_o latin_a language_n laurentius_n valla_n flavius_n blondus_n donatus_n acciaiolus_n a_o florentine_a and_o many_o more_o and_o the_o year_n 1450._o be_v famous_a print_v first_o print_v for_o the_o excellent_a invention_n of_o print_v in_o strawsburg_n by_o a_o goldsmith_n john_n gutenberg_n who_o some_o do_v call_v johannes_n faustus_n this_o art_n as_o it_o be_v wondrous_a for_o invention_n so_o it_o be_v and_o be_v singular_o profitable_a for_o store_n of_o book_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v see_v and_o read_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o father_n come_v to_o light_v history_n be_v make_v know_v time_n be_v compare_v truth_n be_v discern_v falsehood_n be_v detect_v etc._n etc._n before_o that_o time_n the_o rich-poor_a monk_n gather_v all_o the_o book_n into_o their_o cloister_n and_o few_o read_v they_o but_o other_o can_v not_o have_v they_o this_o be_v a_o great_a occasion_n of_o ignorance_n which_o thereafter_o be_v remove_v by_o use_n of_o printing_n 3._o several_a homily_n and_o treati●es_n come_v forth_o against_o the_o covetousness_n luxury_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o clark_n and_o monk_n herman_n ried_n in_o a_o book_n de_fw-fr vita_fw-la &_o honestate_fw-la clericorum_fw-la say_v in_o these_o dangerous_a time_n be_v many_o clark_n whio_n make_v no_o account_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n nor_o of_o reason_n they_o admit_v not_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o they_o despise_v the_o ancient_a canon_n as_o bernard_n have_v write_v unto_o eugenius_n they_o do_v hate_n and_o deride_v man_n of_o understanding_n and_o catholic_n because_o they_o espy_v the_o grievous_a vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o in_o zeal_n speak_v against_o their_o unfaithfulness_n the_o clark_n call_v such_o man_n fantastic_a disturber_n of_o peace_n and_o man_n of_o erroneous_a conscience_n who_o be_v zealous_a to_o root_v out_o the_o vice_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o who_o allege_v the_o truth_n as_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n these_o i_o say_v be_v check_v and_o revile_v by_o their_o own_o and_o other_o prelate_n so_o that_o at_o last_o they_o must_v even_o against_o their_o will_n be_v silent_a and_o dissemble_v so_o it_o be_v verify_v what_o st._n jerom_n say_v in_o lib._n 1._o de_fw-la norma_fw-la vivendi_fw-la cap._n 5._o there_o be_v not_o so_o cruel_a a_o beast_n as_o a_o wicked_a priest_n for_o he_o can_v endure_v to_o be_v correct_v or_o hear_v the_o truth_n in_o a_o word_n they_o be_v full_a of_o wickedness_n then_o he_o complain_v that_o the_o
his_o progenitor_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n have_v be_v possess_v with_o special_a privilege_n and_o custom_n observe_v from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o no_o legate_n from_o the_o apostolic_a see_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o land_n or_o any_o of_o the_o king_n dominion_n without_o call_v petition_z or_o desire_v of_o the_o king_n and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o richard_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_z cardinal_z of_o s._n eusebie_n have_v presume_v to_o enter_v as_o legate_n not_o be_v call_v nor_o desire_v by_o the_o king_n therefore_o the_o say_a proctor_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o england_n then_o in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o gloucester_n lord_n protector_n in_o the_o king_n minority_n do_v protest_v that_o it_o stand_v not_o with_o the_o king_n mind_n by_o advice_n of_o his_o council_n to_o admit_v or_o approve_v the_o come_n of_o the_o say_a legate_n in_o any_o way_n or_o to_o assent_v to_o the_o exercise_n of_o this_o his_o legantin_n authority_n either_o attempt_v or_o to_o be_v attempt_v in_o this_o respect_n contrary_a to_o the_o foresay_a law_n and_o custom_n etc._n etc._n by_o these_o act_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o usurpation_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v odious_a unto_o the_o nation_n and_o that_o their_o avarice_n and_o innovation_n be_v restrain_v but_o the_o king_n do_v not_o exclude_v they_o especial_o in_o england_n the_o persecution_n that_o be_v begin_v in_o the_o latter_a day_n of_o edward_n the_o iii_o continue_v all_o the_o time_n of_o king_n richard_n the_o ii_o and_o henry_n the_o iv_o and_o v._o though_o not_o always_o with_o a_o like_a cruelty_n but_o in_o scotland_n their_o act_n have_v more_o strength_n for_o when_o james_n kennedy_n archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrews_n who_o found_v and_o perfect_v the_o most_o famous_a college_n of_o scotland_n now_o call_v the_o old_a college_n of_o saint_n andrew_n die_v an._n 1466_o his_o brother_n of_o the_o same_o mother_n patrick_n graham_n be_v elect_v by_o the_o canon_n to_o succeed_v but_o he_o can_v not_o obtain_v the_o king_n consent_n for_o the_o courtier_n persuade_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o admit_v such_o election_n because_o by_o such_o mean_n the_o great_a honour_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o base_a man_n to_o wit_n canon_n give_v bishopric_n and_o monk_n make_v abbot_n and_o prior_n whereas_o say_v they_o all_o shall_v depend_v on_o the_o king_n that_o he_o may_v reward_v punish_v and_o forgive_v according_a to_o the_o service_n do_v unto_o he_o wherefore_o that_o patrick_n go_v to_o rome_n and_o easy_o obtain_v andrews_n the_o first_o archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrews_n from_o pope_n sixtus_n the_o iv_o not_o only_a confirmation_n of_o the_o election_n but_o likewise_o the_o title_n of_o archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrew_n and_o that_o all_o the_o other_o bishop_n shall_v be_v subordinate_a unto_o that_o see_v and_o power_n to_o be_v legate_n for_o three_o year_n for_o prevent_v the_o danger_n ensue_a unto_o the_o church_n notwithstanding_o all_o this_o his_o authority_n he_o dare_v not_o return_v into_o scotland_n for_o fie_o year_n but_o abode_n at_o rome_n for_o he_o know_v that_o the_o people_n be_v exclaim_v against_o the_o contempt_n of_o the_o law_n in_o the_o year_n 1472._o he_o will_v adventure_v to_o return_v but_o send_v before_o he_o the_o bull_n of_o his_o legation_n they_o which_o be_v advance_v or_o hope_v for_o advancement_n by_o the_o king_n do_v fear_v that_o this_o legation_n will_v be_v to_o their_o prejudice_n and_o they_o cease_v not_o to_o show_v the_o king_n that_o his_o authority_n be_v contemn_v by_o that_o bull_n his_o act_n be_v annul_v and_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o realm_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o roman_n then_o by_o act_n of_o council_n a_o herald_n be_v send_v unto_o patrick_n at_o his_o land_n before_o he_o enter_v into_o any_o house_n to_o inhabit_v he_o from_o attempt_v any_o thing_n in_o any_o of_o these_o office_n until_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v lay_v unto_o his_o charge_n be_v examine_v before_o the_o king_n thereafter_o he_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o with_o express_a charge_n that_o he_o attempt_v nothing_o beyond_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o predecessor_n nor_o have_v any_o in_o that_o place_n so_o little_a authority_n for_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o rector_n and_o then_o again_o accurse_v by_o husman_n the_o pope_n inquisitor_n and_o the_o archdeacon_n sevez_n be_v place_v in_o his_o chair_n and_o patrick_n be_v hurry_v from_o place_n to_o place_n as_o to_o a_o strong_a prison_n whether_o just_o or_o unjust_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a since_o the_o cause_n nor_o process_n be_v not_o make_v know_v except_o that_o he_o pay_v not_o the_o money_n for_o his_o bull_n of_o privilege_n other_o be_v so_o afraid_a at_o his_o misery_n that_o they_o attempt_v not_o to_o recover_v that_o privilege_n of_o election_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o king_n and_o who_o the_o king_n do_v recommend_v unto_o the_o pope_n be_v all_o accept_v hence_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o benefice_n be_v bestow_v upon_o unqualified_a man_n at_o the_o pleasure_n and_o suit_n of_o courtier_n so_o great_a corruption_n follow_v buchan_n lib._n 12._o 7._o about_o the_o year_n 1465._o a_o carmelite_n preach_v at_o paul_n cross_n that_o christ_n on_o earth_n be_v poor_a and_o beg_v the_o provincial_n of_o that_o order_n and_o other_o hold_v the_o same_o opinion_n but_o other_o do_v inveigh_v bitter_o against_o they_o as_o teacher_n of_o pestiferous_a error_n the_o fame_n of_o this_o controversy_n go_v over_o the_o alps_o and_o pope_n paul_n the_o ii_o write_v his_o bull_n into_o england_n inform_v his_o prelate_n that_o it_o be_v a_o pestiferous_a heresy_n to_o affirm_v that_o christ_n have_v public_o beg_v and_o it_o be_v of_o old_a condemn_v by_o pope_n and_o counsel_n therefore_o it_o shall_v now_o be_v declare_v as_o a_o condemn_a heresy_n in_o the_o year_n 1473._o john_n goose_n or_o as_o some_o write_v john_n huss_n be_v burn_v on_o the_o tower-hill_n for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o abovenamed_a martyr_n the_o next_o year_n a_o old_a matron_n about_o 90._o year_n of_o age_n johan_n boughton_n be_v burn_v at_o smithfield_n and_o her_o daughter_n the_o lady_n young_a be_v in_o danger_n an._n 1498._o a_o godly_a man_n at_o babram_n in_o norfolk_n be_v burn_v and_o in_o the_o same_o year_n and_o place_n a_o priest_n be_v burn_v who_o all_o the_o clark_n of_o canterbury_n can_v not_o remove_v from_o his_o faith_n the_o next_o year_n another_o be_v burn_v at_o smithfield_n io._n fox_n in_o act_n &_o mon._n 8._o about_o the_o year_n 1492._o robert_n blaketer_n go_v to_o rome_n for_o his_o confirmation_n persocuter_n the_o first_o arch_a bishop_n of_o glascow_n a_o persocuter_n in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o glascow_n he_o obtain_v from_o pope_n alexander_n the_o vi_o the_o title_n of_o archbishop_n and_o that_o three_o other_o diocy_n shall_v be_v subject_a unto_o he_o sevez_fw-fr archbishop_n of_o saint_n andrews_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v he_o nor_o his_o title_n because_o it_o be_v in_o prejudice_n of_o his_o former_a title_n upon_o this_o occasion_n both_o clergy_n and_o nobility_n go_v into_o faction_n at_o last_o they_o be_v reconcile_v so_o that_o they_o both_o shall_v be_v call_v arch-bishop_n but_o saint_n andrews_n shall_v precede_v in_o the_o year_n 1494._o by_o this_o robert_n be_v summon_v before_o the_o king_n and_o council_n thirty_o person_n from_o kyle_n and_o cunningham_n among_o these_o george_n campbel_n of_o cesnok_n adam_n reed_n of_o barskyne_v john_n campbel_n of_o newmills_n andrew_n shaw_n of_o polkennet_n etc._n etc._n the_o article_n lay_v unto_o their_o charge_n be_v 1._o image_n shall_v not_o be_v worship_v 2._o nor_o relic_n of_o saint_n 3._o christ_n give_v power_n unto_o peter_n and_o not_o to_o the_o pope_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v 4._o the_o pope_n be_v not_o the_o successor_n of_o peter_n but_o where_o it_o be_v say_v unto_o he_o go_v behind_o i_o satan_n 5._o after_o the_o consecration_n bread_n remain_v and_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v not_o there_o 6._o the_o pope_n deceive_v the_o people_n by_o his_o bull_n and_o indulgence_n 7._o the_o mass_n profit_v not_o the_o soul_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o purgatory_n 8._o the_o pope_n exalt_v himself_o against_o god_n and_o above_o god_n 9_o priest_n may_v have_v wife_n 10._o true_a christian_n receive_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n every_o day_n by_o faith_n 10._o i'faith_o shall_v not_o be_v give_v unto_o miracle_n now_o 11._o we_o shall_v pray_v unto_o god_n only_o 12._o we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v all_o that_o doctor_n have_v write_v 13._o the_o pope_n who_o be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o antichrist_n they_o be_v accuse_v upon_o other_o
a_o model_n of_o presbyterian_a gouvernment_n be_v draw_v up_o and_o elder_n be_v choose_v again_o this_o be_v settle_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o senate_n so_o that_o from_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o presbytery_n it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a either_o for_o minister_n or_o people_n to_o recede_v though_o both_o senate_n and_o the_o people_n do_v agree_v thereunto_o as_o consonant_n unto_o god_n word_n yet_o some_o not_o only_o of_o the_o people_n but_o even_o of_o the_o chief_a man_n do_v manifest_v their_o dislike_v of_o it_o yea_o some_o minister_n which_o afterward_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o some_o wickedness_n though_o they_o do_v not_o open_o oppose_v it_o yet_o under_o hand_n they_o wrought_v against_o it_o pretend_v the_o example_n of_o other_o church_n where_o no_o excommunication_n be_v use_v and_o some_o cry_v out_o that_o it_o will_v introduce_v again_o a_o popish_a tyranny_n but_o he_o overcome_v these_o difficulty_n by_o show_v that_o not_o only_o the_o true_a doctrine_n but_o discipline_n also_o must_v be_v warrant_v by_o the_o worde_n of_o god_n and_o that_o this_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n as_o oecolampade_n zuinglius_fw-la bucer_fw-la melanthon_n capito_n etc._n etc._n which_o he_o prove_v out_o of_o their_o book_n and_o tell_v they_o that_o other_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v condemn_v which_o have_v not_o proceed_v so_o far_o nor_o those_o minister_n which_o have_v find_v that_o their_o people_n need_v not_o such_o censure_n and_o last_o show_v a_o vast_a difference_n between_o the_o popish_a tyranny_n and_o the_o easy_a yoke_n of_o the_o lord_n so_o that_o at_o last_o the_o discipline_n be_v establish_v novemb_n 20._o 1541._o nevertheless_o some_o loose_a man_n will_v not_o be_v tie_v unto_o that_o discipline_n but_o seek_v to_o break_v it_o especial_o in_o the_o year_n 1546_o amedius_fw-la perrin_n and_o ambitious_a man_n can_v not_o endure_v caluin_n thundering_n against_o his_o lasciviousness_n and_o begin_v to_o discover_v what_o he_o and_o his_o associate_n have_v for_o a_o time_n be_v contrive_v the_o senate_n take_v notice_n of_o he_o he_o hold_v he_o silent_a a_o while_n but_o the_o contrive_a wickedness_n break_v out_o more_o open_o for_o one_o of_o the_o senate_n blame_v caluin_n of_o fall_n doctrine_n the_o cause_n be_v hear_v before_o the_o senate_n and_o that_o senator_n be_v condemn_v of_o slander_n and_o two_o minister_n which_o have_v set_v he_o on_o be_v convict_v of_o drunkenness_n and_o remove_v out_o of_o their_o place_n caluin_n show_v still_o that_o the_o life_n of_o christianity_n consist_v not_o so_o much_o in_o profession_n of_o truth_n as_o in_o the_o practice_n of_o godliness_n then_o perrin_n and_o his_o associate_n do_v appeal_v from_o the_o presbytery_n unto_o the_o senate_n the_o presbytery_n plead_v their_o constitution_n agreeable_a unto_o god_n word_n and_o settle_v by_o authority_n and_o therefore_o that_o their_o privilege_n may_v not_o be_v infringe_v the_o senate_n grant_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v so_o and_o because_o perrin_n will_v not_o be_v rule_v they_o depose_v he_o from_o his_o captainship_n an._n 1547._o but_o the_o next_o year_n he_o be_v restore_v by_o the_o prevalency_n of_o his_o friend_n in_o the_o year_n 1552._o one_o berteler_n be_v suspend_v from_o the_o sacrament_n for_o sundry_a fault_n he_o crave_v that_o the_o senate_n will_v absolve_v he_o caluin_n in_o name_n of_o the_o presbytery_n oppones_fw-la show_v that_o the_o magistrate_n shall_v preserve_v and_o not_o destroy_v good_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o false_a calumny_n of_o the_o adversary_n pretend_v that_o the_o presbytery_n do_v encroach_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o magistrate_n prevail_v so_o that_o in_o the_o common-councel_n it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o last_o appeal_v aught_o to_o be_v unto_o the_o senate_n who_o may_v absolve_v who_o they_o think_v fit_a so_o berteler_n goat_n letter_n of_o absolution_n confirm_v with_o the_o public_a seal_n then_o perrin_n and_o his_o associate_n hope_v for_o one_o of_o two_o either_o that_o caluin_n will_v not_o obey_v this_o mandate_n and_o so_o he_o will_v be_v oppress_v by_o the_o people_n or_o else_o if_o he_o do_v obey_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o contemn_v the_o presbytery_n and_o they_o may_v follow_v their_o licentiousness_n caluin_n understand_v this_o but_o two_o day_n before_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o september_n and_o in_o his_o sermon_n when_o he_o have_v speak_v much_o against_o the_o profaner_n of_o the_o sacrament_n say_v i_o follow_v chrysostome_n will_v rather_o suffer_v myself_o to_o be_v slay_v then_o this_o my_o hand_n shall_v reach_v the_o holy_a element_n to_o those_o who_o have_v be_v judge_v contemner_n of_o god_n these_o word_n do_v so_o prevail_v though_o the_o man_n be_v head_n strong_a that_o perrin_n send_v private_o unto_o berteler_n and_o advise_v he_o not_o to_o obtrude_v himself_o upon_o the_o sacrament_n so_o it_o be_v peaceable_o admini_v through_o god_n mercy_n in_o the_o afternoon_n caluin_n preach_v on_o act_n 20_o where_o paul_n take_v his_o leave_n of_o the_o ephesian_n and_o profess_v that_o he_o will_v neither_o oppose_v nor_o teach_v other_o to_o oppose_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o magistrate_n and_o he_o exhort_v the_o congregation_n to_o continue_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o see_v say_v he_o thing_n be_v come_v to_o this_o pass_n give_v i_o leave_v brethren_n to_o use_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n unto_o you_o i_o commend_v you_o to_o god_n and_o the_o word_n of_o his_o grace_n these_o word_n daunt_v the_o wicked_a wonderful_o and_o prevail_v much_o with_o they_o all_o the_o next_o day_n the_o common-counsel_n be_v assemble_v and_o the_o whole_a presbytery_n entreat_v that_o they_o may_v be_v hear_v in_o give_v reason_n for_o abrogate_a the_o forenamed_a act_n concern_v the_o appeal_n this_o be_v assent_v their_o mind_n be_v much_o change_v and_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o the_o act_n shall_v be_v suspend_v and_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o four_o helvetian_a church_n shall_v be_v crave_v therein_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o law_n former_o establish_v thus_o the_o faction_n be_v divert_v from_o caluin_n but_o afterward_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v the_o storm_n on_o farell_n who_o in_o these_o day_n come_v from_o neocom_a into_o geneva_n and_o in_o a_o sermon_n sharp_o reprove_v the_o factious_a partly_o know_v the_o equity_n of_o the_o cause_n and_o partly_o rely_v upon_o his_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v former_o among_o they_o when_o he_o be_v go_v that_o faction_n complain_v that_o he_o have_v do_v they_o wrong_n and_o procure_v that_o one_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o senate_n of_o neocom_n to_o cause_n farell_n appear_v at_o a_o day_n appoint_v farell_n come_v again_o to_o geneva_n not_o without_o danger_n for_o that_o faction_n cry_v out_o that_o he_o deserve_v to_o be_v throw_v into_o the_o river_n a_o honest_a young_a man_n say_v to_o perrin_n that_o farell_n the_o common_a father_n of_o the_o city_n shall_v not_o be_v wrong_v and_o he_o with_o another_o citizen_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o stand_v by_o farell_n at_o the_o day_n of_o hear_v his_o adversaty_n be_v astonish_v and_o of_o their_o own_o accord_n crave_v pardon_v so_o farell_n be_v dismiss_v then_o come_v answer_v from_o the_o four_o helvetian_a city_n who_o unanimous_o confirm_v the_o ecclesiastical_a policy_n as_o it_o have_v be_v before_o establish_v behold_v here_o what_o sort_n of_o man_n do_v oppose_v the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n to_o wit_n loose_a and_o ambitious_a man_n xli_o francis_n 2._o king_n of_o france_n do_v maintain_v james_n faber_n and_o his_o france_n persecution_n in_o france_n printer_n against_o the_o sobonist_n and_o he_o profess_v a_o desire_n of_o reformation_n when_o he_o seek_v aleagve_n with_o the_o protestant_n at_o smalcald_a nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o have_v the_o pope_n to_o judge_v so_o of_o he_o and_o therefore_o he_o continue_v in_o persecute_v they_o which_o be_v for_o reformation_n who_o can_v tell_v all_o the_o barbarity_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o france_n from_o the_o year_n 1538._o until_o the_o year_n 1589._o yet_o for_o exampls_n sake_n we_o will_v touch_v some_o in_o that_o year_n 1538._o aprile_a 13._o a_o young_a gentleman_n of_o tolouse_n be_v burn_v at_o paris_n for_o eat_v egg_n in_o lent_n remarkable_a be_v that_o horrible_a impiety_n an._n 1545._o against_o the_o waldenses_n in_o merindole_n &_o cabrier_n when_o those_o hear_v of_o the_o reformation_n in_o germany_n they_o be_v glade_n and_o send_v for_o some_o preacher_n by_o who_o they_o receive_v clear_a information_n and_o with_o more_o courage_n do_v avow_v the_o faith_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o be_v delate_a for_o rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n and_o this_o
worde_n and_o celebration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n according_a to_o the_o first_o institution_n these_o be_v all_o apprehend_v and_o carry_v in_o cart_n into_o paris_n where_o they_o receive_v sentence_n of_o death_n and_o be_v send_v back_o 14._o of_o they_o be_v burn_v in_o one_o fire_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v whip_v and_o banish_v these_o go_v into_o sundry_a province_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o glorify_v god_n by_o preach_v the_o truth_n namely_o pharonus_n manginn_v petrus_n bonuspanis_n etc._n etc._n afterward_o this_o peter_z with_o other_z twell_n be_v burn_v at_o paris_n jo._n fox_n in_o act._n &_o mon._n when_o king_n francis_n time_n the_o persecution_n be_v stop_v for_o a_o time_n be_v sick_a unto_o death_n he_o repent_v of_o his_o cruelty_n and_o many_o write_v say_v thuan._n loc_fw-fr cit_fw-la that_o he_o advise_v his_o son_n henry_n to_o try_v the_o injury_n do_v by_o the_o senate_n of_o aignes_n against_o those_o of_o piedmont_n and_o he_o send_v order_n unto_o that_o senate_n to_o apprehend_v john_n a_o monk_n and_o put_v he_o to_o a_o assize_n that_o man_n have_v devise_v a_o new_a kind_n of_o torment_n to_o wit_n he_o cause_v the_o waldenses_n put_v their_o leg_n into_o boot_n full_a of_o seethe_a tallow_n and_o in_o derision_n ask_v they_o if_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o ride_v when_o the_o monk_n hear_v of_o this_o mandate_n he_o flee_v into_o avenion_n and_o within_o few_o day_n he_o be_v so_o torment_v with_o ulcer_n that_o he_o wish_v death_n king_n henry_n ii_o love_a not_o cardinal_n turnon_n and_o such_o cruel_a persecuter_n so_o the_o merindolian_o and_o other_o waldenses_n gather_v again_o and_o by_o advice_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n aumalius_n present_v unto_o the_o king_n their_o complaint_n against_o the_o iniquity_n &_o cruelty_n of_o the_o senate_n of_o aignes_n and_o they_o do_v humble_o beseech_v that_o their_o cause_n may_v be_v once_o hear_v and_o examine_v it_o have_v some_o beginning_n in_o the_o great_a counsel_n as_o they_o call_v it_o but_o the_o king_n bring_v it_o to_o the_o high_a parliament_n of_o paris_n there_o the_o matter_n be_v debate_v public_o fifty_o day_n with_o great_a vehemency_n by_o ja._n auberius_n for_o the_o waldenses_n and_o peter_n robert_n for_o aignes_n and_o dion_n riantius_n the_o king_n advocate_n when_o the_o complaint_n and_o many_o cruelty_n be_v read_v all_o the_o hearer_n conceive_v hope_n of_o redress_n the_o event_n be_v only_a guerin_n regius_n patronus_fw-la one_o of_o the_o cruel_a persecuter_n and_o have_v no_o favour_n among_o the_o courtier_n be_v behead_v and_o minier_v die_v as_o be_v say_v before_o little_o be_v do_v public_o for_o religion_n in_o france_n until_o the_o year_n 1553_o then_o many_o suffer_v at_o lion_n and_o paris_n among_o who_o be_v martialis_n albus_n and_o petrus_n scriba_fw-la who_o have_v be_v send_v from_o bern_n in_o helvetia_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o before_o they_o have_v do_v any_o thing_n they_o be_v take_v at_o lion_n and_o the_o king_n will_v not_o spare_v they_o for_o the_o intercession_n of_o bern._n thuan._n lib._n 12._o xliii_o charles_n cardinal_z of_o lorraine_n intend_v towards_o rome_n will_v do_v some_o thing_n to_o gratify_v the_o pope_n therefore_o he_o persuade_v the_o king_n to_o renew_v persecution_n be_v renew_v publish_v a_o act_n command_v all_o precedent_n to_o prosecute_v without_o any_o delay_n all_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n against_o lutheran_n the_o senate_n of_o paris_n answer_v unto_o the_o king_n that_o four_o year_n before_o he_o have_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v act_v that_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o ancestor_n who_o be_v all_o defender_n of_o the_o religion_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n the_o power_n of_o life_n or_o death_n for_o religion_n shall_v be_v reserve_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o by_o this_o act_n he_o lose_v his_o privilege_n and_o forsake_v his_o servant_n and_o subject_n and_o commit_v their_o fame_n good_n and_o person_n unto_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o elergy_n who_o by_o their_o severity_n in_o these_o year_n by_o past_a have_v not_o amend_v any_o error_n but_o rather_o have_v exasperate_v the_o people_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v more_o reasonable_a to_o command_v the_o bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o instruct_v their_o flock_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n more_o diligent_o either_o by_o themselves_o or_o by_o qualify_a vicar_n and_o in_o time_n come_v to_o promote_v only_o sufficient_a pastor_n who_o have_v no_o need_n of_o vicar_n thuan._n lib._n 16._o in_o the_o year_n 1557._o septemb_n 4._o a_o great_a number_n assemble_v in_o a_o private_a house_n of_o s._n jaques_n striet_fw-la to_o hear_v the_o worde_n and_o receive_v the_o lord_n supper_n in_o the_o night_n because_o they_o have_v not_o liberty_n in_o the_o day_n the_o multitude_n convene_v in_o the_o nighour_n house_n with_o weapon_n and_o stone_n to_o throw_v at_o these_o people_n in_o their_o outcome_v they_o who_o come_v forth_o first_o be_v kill_v with_o stone_n and_o other_o take_v courage_n upon_o necessity_n draw_v their_o sword_n and_o come_v forth_o all_o save_v to_o one_o say_v thuan._n lib._n 19_o the_o author_n of_o the_o french_a commentary_n lib._n 1._o writ_n that_o the_o believer_n see_v that_o they_o be_v compass_v on_o every_o side_n by_o the_o furious_a multitude_n have_v small_a hope_n to_o escape_v but_o some_o find_v a_o way_n make_v open_a through_o a_o gate_n which_o be_v a_o singular_a providence_n for_o the_o savety_n of_o many_o after_o they_o have_v return_v to_o their_o prayer_n escape_v by_o flight_n without_o harm_n even_o as_o if_o god_n himself_o have_v go_v before_o they_o both_o these_o author_n say_v that_o the_o woman_n and_o weak_a people_n about_o the_o number_n of_o 120_o be_v take_v by_o the_o inquisitor_n say_v thuan_n and_o the_o other_o say_v by_o the_o magistrate_n and_o hurry_v into_o prison_n and_o then_o burn_v among_o who_o be_v nic._n clivius_fw-la a_o schoolmaster_n in_o paris_n in_o the_o 60_o year_n of_o his_o age_n taurin_n gravella_n in_o senatu_fw-la patronus_fw-la nic._n cevius_n a_o physician_n and_o some_o noble_a woman_n diverse_a report_n be_v spread_v of_o this_o assemble_v the_o monk_n preach_v that_o the_o lutheran_n meet_v in_o the_o night_n without_o any_o light_n to_o fulfil_v their_o lust_n the_o mother_n spare_v not_o to_o lie_v with_o she_o soon_o ....._o their_o clothes_n be_v find_v with_o the_o mark_n of_o such_o filthiness_n they_o kill_v their_o infant_n etc._n etc._n these_o thing_n be_v report_v unto_o the_o king_n but_o uncertain_o yet_o none_o dare_v contradict_v they_o lest_o he_o be_v challenge_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o sect_n thuan._n ibid._n and_o the_o mind_n of_o many_o do_v boil_v against_o they_o so_o that_o he_o be_v call_v the_o best_a man_n who_o can_v devise_v the_o mean_n of_o their_o destruction_n the_o protestant_n write_v a_o apology_n show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o those_o calumny_n even_o as_o the_o like_a be_v impute_v unto_o the_o ancient_a christian_n as_o be_v clear_a by_o undoubted_a testimony_n and_o history_n to_o the_o end_n king_n and_o prince_n may_v be_v move_v to_o hate_v they_o and_o now_o these_o be_v publish_v by_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v enjoy_v other_o man_n good_n which_o they_o have_v catch_v wicked_o and_o therefore_o they_o humble_o pray_v that_o the_o king_n will_v be_v please_v to_o try_v their_o cause_n etc._n etc._n french_a come_v lib._n 1._o they_o find_v mean_n to_o lay_v this_o book_n in_o the_o king_n bedchamber_n and_o so_o be_v bring_v into_o his_o hand_n antonius_n demochares_n a_o inquisitor_n and_o ro._n cevalis_n bishop_n of_o aurincae_n write_v a_o answer_n unto_o this_o apology_n but_o none_o dare_v reply_v because_o the_o king_n ear_n be_v so_o sell_v unto_o the_o impudent_a accusation_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o cardinal_n and_o he_o send_v the_o precedent_n julianensis_fw-la command_v all_o heretic_n or_o waldenses_n as_o they_o call_v they_o to_o submit_v themselves_o unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o point_n of_o religion_n or_o to_o want_v land_n and_o life_n the_o reform_a with_o humble_a answer_n appease_v the_o mind_n of_o the_o commissioner_n osiand_n epitome_n hist_o cent_n 16._o lib._n 3._o c._n 26._o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o swiser_n send_v unto_o king_n henry_n entreat_v for_o those_o miserable_a man_n profess_v the_o same_o religion_n with_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n philip_n king_n of_o spain_n be_v enter_v into_o picardy_n and_o have_v take_v sanquintin_n and_o other_o place_n so_o that_o henry_n have_v need_v of_o aid_n from_o these_o intereessor_n and_o do_v bear_v with_o the_o slackness_n of_o his_o commissioner_n thuan._n loc_fw-la cit_fw-la in_o the_o same_o year_n it_o be_v ordain_v by_o king_n henry_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v
charge_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n and_o correction_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n not_o of_o his_o chief_a town_n only_o but_o also_o of_o the_o whole_a province_n of_o which_o he_o be_v appoint_v overseer_n if_o his_o offence_n be_v know_v and_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o the_o town_n and_o province_n be_v negligent_a than_o the_o next_o one_o or_o two_o superintendent_o with_o their_o minister_n and_o elder_n may_v conveen_v he_o and_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o his_o chief_a town_n provide_v it_o be_v within_o his_o own_o province_n or_o chief_a town_n may_v accuse_v or_o correct_v aswell_o the_o superintendent_n in_o these_o thing_n that_o be_v worthy_a of_o correction_n as_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n of_o their_o negligence_n and_o ungodly_a toleration_n of_o his_o offence_n whatsoever_o crime_n deserve_v deposition_n or_o correction_n of_o any_o other_o minister_n deserve_v the_o same_o in_o the_o superintendent_n without_o exception_n of_o person_n he_o have_v also_o curtail_v these_o rule_n for_o what_o cause_n he_o have_v so_o do_v he_o who_o please_v to_o confer_v the_o two_o may_v guess_v xii_o the_o parliament_n as_o be_v appoint_v in_o the_o treaty_n sit_v down_o in_o faith_n the_o reformation_n be_v establish_v by_o parliament_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n august_n at_o edinburgh_n there_o be_v present_a six_o bishop_n twelve_o abbot_n and_o prior_n nineteen_o earl_n and_o lord_n with_o many_o baron_n and_o of_o commissioner_n of_o burgh_n none_o be_v absent_a many_o lord_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o other_o estate_n do_v absent_v themselves_o contemptuous_o say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o reformation_n the_o first_o thing_n they_o treat_v be_v a_o supplication_n of_o the_o baron_n gentleman_n burgess_n and_o other_o true_a subject_n of_o the_o realm_n profess_v the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o a_o reformation_n of_o religion_n so_o soon_o as_o it_o be_v read_v the_o baron_n and_o minister_n be_v call_v and_o command_v give_v unto_o they_o to_o draw_v into_o plain_a and_o several_a head_n the_o sum_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o will_v maintain_v and_o desire_v to_o be_v establish_v as_o wholesome_a true_a and_o only_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v this_o they_o willing_o accept_v and_o on_o the_o four_o day_n to_o wit_n august_n 17._o they_o present_v the_o confession_n which_o afterward_o be_v register_v in_o the_o first_o parliament_n of_o king_n james_n 6._o and_o be_v common_o see_v also_o in_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n when_o the_o confession_n be_v read_v first_o by_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o article_n and_o then_o in_o audience_n of_o the_o whole_a parliament_n all_o be_v bid_v in_o god_n name_n to_o object_v if_o they_o can_v say_v any_o thing_n against_o that_o doctrine_n some_o minister_n standing-by_a ready_a to_o answer_v if_o any_o will_v defend_v papistry_n or_o impugn_v any_o article_n no_o objection_n be_v make_v then_o a_o day_n be_v appoint_v for_o concurrence_n in_o that_o and_o other_o head_n that_o day_n the_o confession_n be_v read_v again_o each_o article_n several_o and_o the_o vote_n be_v ask_v according_o the_o papistical_a bishop_n say_v nothing_o three_o lord_n athol_n sommerwell_n and_o bortwick_n say_v we_o will_v believe_v as_o our_o father_n believe_v the_o earl_n martial_n say_v it_o be_v long_o since_o i_o have_v some_o favour_n unto_o the_o truth_n and_o since_o i_o have_v a_o suspicion_n of_o the_o papistical_a religion_n but_o i_o praise_v my_o god_n who_o this_o day_n have_v full_o resolve_v i_o in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o for_o see_v the_o bishop_n who_o for_o their_o learning_n can_v and_o for_o their_o zeal_n that_o they_o shall_v bear_v unto_o the_o verity_n will_v as_o i_o suppose_v have_v gainsay_v any_o thing_n that_o direct_o repugn_v unto_o the_o verity_n of_o god_n see_v i_o say_v the_o bishop_n here_o present_a speak_v nothing_o against_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v i_o can_v not_o but_o hold_v it_o for_o the_o very_a truth_n of_o god_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o be_v deceivable_a doctrine_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o as_o in_o mely_v ●_o approve_v the_o one_o and_o condemn_v the_o other_o and_o yet_o more_o i_o must_v vote_n by_o way_n of_o protestation_n that_o if_o any_o person_n ecclesiastical_a shall_v after_o this_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o this_o our_o confession_n that_o they_o have_v no_o place_n nor_o credit_n consider_v that_o they_o have_v long_a advertisement_n and_o full_a knowledge_n of_o this_o our_o confession_n none_o be_v now_o find_v in_o lawful_a free_a and_o open_a parliament_n to_o oppose_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o we_o profess_v and_o therefore_o if_o any_o of_o this_o generation_n pretend_v to_o do_v it_o after_o this_o i_o protest_v that_o he_o be_v repute_v one_o that_o love_v his_o own_o commodity_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o world_n more_o than_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n soul_n after_o the_o vote_v and_o establish_v of_o the_o confession_n by_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o parliament_n there_o be_v also_o read_v two_o particular_a act_n one_o against_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o abuse_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o other_o against_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o pope_n these_o be_v several_o vote_v and_o conclude_v then_o and_o renew_v in_o the_o parliament_n an._n 1567._o with_o these_o act_n sir_n james_n sandelanes_n knight_n of_o the_o rhodes_n who_o have_v be_v neutral_a hitherto_o be_v send_v into_o france_n for_o obtain_v ratification_n and_o be_v order_v to_o clear_v the_o noble_a man_n and_o other_o from_o the_o imputation_n of_o dissoyalty_n and_o to_o pacify_v the_o mind_n of_o their_o soveraine_v but_o he_o find_v his_o ambassage_n and_o himself_o contemn_v the_o guisian_n check_v he_o bitter_o at_o his_o first_o audience_n that_o he_o be_v a_o knight_n of_o the_o holy_a order_n have_v take_v a_o commission_n from_o rebel_n to_o solicit_v ratification_n of_o execrable_a heresy_n i_o will_v not_o stay_v here_o upon_o the_o reasonableness_n of_o this_o answer_n nor_o to_o consider_v who_o give_v it_o only_o this_o be_v add_v by_o my_o author_n that_o more_o care_n be_v give_v unto_o three_o person_n the_o bishop_n of_o glasgow_n the_o abbot_n of_o dumfernlin_n and_o the_o lord_n seton_n who_o go_v away_o with_o the_o french_a army_n the_o country_n than_o be_v great_o trouble_v for_o this_o cold_a entertainment_n of_o their_o commissioner_n for_o they_o be_v sensible_a of_o their_o own_o weakness_n if_o france_n will_v invade_v again_o and_o they_o be_v doubtful_a of_o england_n because_o their_o last_o support_n be_v with_o so_o great_a charge_n and_o hazard_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o morton_n and_o glencairn_n who_o after_o the_o parliament_n be_v send_v to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o the_o queen_n elisabet_n and_o to_o entreat_v the_o continuance_n of_o her_o love_n have_v give_v no_o advertisement_n in_o time_n of_o this_o doubtfulness_n news_n be_v bring_v that_o young_a king_n francis_n be_v dead_a then_o sorrowful_a be_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o popish_a faction_n and_o the_o country_n be_v confident_a to_o have_v their_o queen_n at_o home_o again_o as_o god_n bring_v it_o to_o pass_v in_o despite_n of_o all_o the_o attempt_n that_o that_o faction_n do_v use_v in_o the_o contrary_n after_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n a_o convention_n of_o the_o estate_n be_v call_v to_o meet_v in_o january_n 1561._o then_o be_v lord_n james_n stuart_n appoint_v to_o go_v in_o their_o name_n unto_o the_o queen_n commission_n be_v give_v to_o several_a nobleman_n and_o baron_n in_o several_a part_n to_o pull_v down_o the_o abbey_n and_o cloister_n that_o be_v yet_o stand_v and_o to_o demolish_v all_o monument_n of_o idolatry_n throughout_o the_o country_n then_o also_o the_o book_n of_o discipline_n be_v present_v and_o the_o minister_n supplicate_v the_o convention_n to_o establish_v it_o alexander_n anderson_n subprincipall_a of_o the_o university_n at_o aberdeen_n be_v call_v to_o object_n against_o it_o he_o refuse_v to_o dispute_v there_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n pretend_v for_o excuse_n a_o sentence_n of_o tertullian_n the_o minister_n reply_n the_o authority_n of_o tertullian_n can_v not_o prejudge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n command_v to_o give_v a_o reason_n of_o our_o faith_n to_o every_o one_o that_o require_v it_o and_o for_o the_o present_a it_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o nor_o of_o any_o man_n to_o dispute_v in_o any_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v full_o ground_v upon_o god_n word_n and_o all_o that_o we_o believe_v be_v without_o controversy_n contain_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o it_o be_v require_v of_o he_o as_o of_o other_o papist_n that_o they_o will_v suffer_v their_o doctrine_n constitution_n and_o cermony_n come_v to_o a_o trial_n and_o especial_o
respect_n of_o the_o vast_a charge_n of_o the_o papal_a chamber_n upon_o the_o legate_n the_o poor_a italian_a bishop_n and_o other_o extraordinary_n it_o be_v expedient_a to_o calculat_v the_o time_n of_o beginning_n and_o proceed_v and_o that_o no_o hour_n be_v spentid_o as_o also_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o before_o hand_n he_o ma._n be_v assure_v of_o the_o german_n both_o catholics_n and_o protestant_n and_o bind_v themselves_o unto_o the_o decree_n especial_o what_o thing_n be_v already_o establish_v shall_v not_o be_v call_v into_o question_n as_o he_o have_v condescend_v to_o further_a the_o affair_n of_o his_o ma._n by_o hold_v the_o synod_n in_o that_o place_n so_o he_o crave_v that_o his_o sincerity_n be_v not_o abuse_v unto_o a_o burden_v of_o himself_o and_o hope_v if_o any_o shall_v attempt_v against_o he_o by_o caviliation_n or_o calumny_n his_o ma._n will_v not_o marvel_v if_o he_o use_v the_o remedy_n that_o shall_v occur_v for_o defence_n of_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v immediate_o from_o god_n the_o emperor_n return_v answer_v extol_v his_o wisdom_n both_o in_o remit_v the_o synod_n and_o in_o his_o consideration_n as_o for_o himself_o and_o germany_n in_o a_o decree_n at_o augsburg_n a_o year_n ago_o they_o all_o even_a protestant_n have_v submit_v themselves_o as_o the_o copy_n which_o he_o send_v show_v but_o of_o the_o particular_n that_o be_v determine_v it_o will_v be_v expedient_a to_o speak_v of_o they_o when_o party_n be_v bring_v together_o and_o he_o promise_v to_o be_v a_o protector_n of_o his_o holiness_n and_o of_o his_o life_n if_o occasion_n require_v about_o that_o time_n the_o emperor_n propound_v in_o another_o diet_n at_o augsburg_n that_o now_o the_o synod_n be_v to_o be_v open_v at_o trent_n it_o please_v the_o popish_a but_o the_o reform_a submit_v themselves_o conditional_o 1._o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v not_o preside_v but_o himself_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o synod_n 2._o the_o thing_n that_o be_v act_v against_o they_o shall_v be_v rëexamined_a 3._o the_o divine_n of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n shall_v have_v decisive_a voice_n now_o the_o emperor_n give_v unto_o the_o pope_n account_n of_o the_o absolute_a submission_n of_o the_o one_o party_n and_o of_o the_o condition_n require_v by_o the_o other_o and_o he_o demand_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o bull_n of_o convocation_n before_o it_o be_v publish_v to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v make_v a_o decree_n concern_v it_o in_o the_o diet_n and_o cause_v it_o be_v receive_v by_o they_o all_o those_o thing_n do_v not_o please_v the_o court_n of_o rome_n and_o a_o bull_n be_v send_v conform_a to_o the_o late_a one_o for_o the_o pope_n say_v if_o the_o german_n will_v refuse_v he_o be_v deliver_v from_o his_o fear_n of_o the_o synod_n as_o also_o from_o the_o scandal_n for_o the_o want_n of_o it_o or_o if_o they_o accept_v it_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v able_a to_o practice_v any_o thing_n against_o he_o all_o both_o papist_n and_o protestant_n speak_v against_o the_o pop_n pride_n appear_v in_o that_o bull_n but_o the_o emperor_n calm_v their_o animosity_n by_o fair_a promise_n he_o send_v unto_o the_o pope_n for_o more_o smooth_a word_n in_o the_o bull_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a the_o open_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v may._n 1._o an._n 1551._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o year_n the_o pope_n consult_v how_o to_o have_v trusty_a precedent_n and_o to_o save_v great_a charge_n many_o legate_n must_v have_v much_o money_n and_o he_o dare_v not_o trust_v one_o alone_o wherefore_o he_o send_v marcellus_n crescentius_n car._n de_fw-la s._n marcello_n legat_n and_o two_o nuntij_fw-la sebastianus_n pighinus_fw-la arch_a bishop_n of_o siponto_n and_o aloi●us_a lipomanus_n bishop_n of_o verona_n all_o of_o equal_a authority_n and_o as_o large_a as_o the_o letter_n of_o his_o predecessor_n do_v bear_v he_o command_v they_o to_o open_v the_o synod_n at_o the_o day_n appoint_v even_o though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o prelate_n present_a viii_o very_o few_o prelate_n come_v nevertheless_o a_o session_n be_v hold_v and_o a_o open_v the_o council_n be_v open_v decree_n be_v publish_v to_o wit_n the_o synod_n be_v open_a and_o the_o next_o session_n shall_v be_v september_n 1_o at_o that_o day_n another_o decree_n be_v make_v the_o three_o session_n shall_v be_v october_n 2._o in_o this_o second_o session_n letter_n be_v present_v from_o henry_n king_n of_o france_n the_o inscription_n be_v offensive_a because_o he_o call_v it_o a_o protestation_n of_o france_n against_o it_o they_o not_o a_o synod_n but_o a_o convent_n they_o refuse_v to_o open_v the_o letter_n as_o not_o direct_v unto_o they_o then_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o mentz_n if_o you_o will_v not_o receive_v letter_n from_o the_o king_n of_o france_n calling_z you_o a_o holy_a convent_n how_o will_v you_o he_o arken_v unto_o the_o protestant_n call_v you_o a_o malignant_a convent_n then_o the_o legate_n say_v the_o word_n may_v be_v take_v in_o good_a part_n and_o otherwise_o we_o protest_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v prejudicial_a the_o contens_fw-fr of_o the_o letter_n be_v to_o show_v the_o equity_n on_o his_o part_n of_o the_o present_a war_n against_o the_o emperor_n and_o pope_n in_o protect_a octavius_n farnes_n duke_n of_o parma_n he_o be_v devote_v unto_o the_o apostolical_a see_v albeit_o he_o be_v compel_v to_o take_v arm_n agaigst_fw-ge pope_n julius_n he_o have_v send_v unto_o rome_n and_o there_o have_v protest_v that_o if_o the_o pope_n do_v judge_v the_o protection_n of_o parma_n which_o he_o have_v so_o lawful_o undertake_v even_o by_o the_o pop_n permission_n to_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o stir_v up_o all_o europe_n into_o war_n he_o be_v sorry_a but_o it_o can_v not_o be_v impute_v unto_o he_o who_o be_v most_o willing_a to_o accept_v the_o decree_n if_o due_a order_n be_v observe_v in_o make_v they_o if_o the_o pope_n will_v continue_v in_o war_a he_o can_v not_o send_v his_o prelate_n unto_o trent_n where_o they_o have_v not_o secure_a access_n nor_o can_v france_n be_v tie_v unto_o their_o decree_n but_o he_o will_v use_v the_o remedy_n of_o his_o ancestor_n by_o national_a counsel_n when_o the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o orator_n make_v protestation_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n the_o speaker_n of_o the_o synod_n after_o some_o private_a conference_n with_o the_o legate_n say_v the_o king_n modesty_n be_v acceptable_a but_o they_o can_v not_o accept_v the_o person_n of_o the_o french_a abbot_n who_o have_v make_v the_o protestation_n and_o according_a to_o law_n they_o summon_v he_o apud_fw-la acta_fw-la to_o be_v present_a october_n 2_o to_o receive_v answer_n and_o they_o forbid_v to_o make_v any_o note_n of_o these_o action_n there_o be_v variety_n of_o opinion_n concern_v this_o protestation_n the_o imperialist_n say_v it_o be_v null_a because_o a_o act_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o any_o universality_n be_v esteem_v lawful_a when_o the_o lesser_a be_v call_v will_v not_o be_v present_a and_o the_o french_a bishop_n may_v have_v come_v without_o pass_v through_o any_o of_o the_o pop_n territory_n other_o say_v to_o call_v in_o word_n and_o exclude_v indeed_o be_v not_o to_o invite_v and_o albeit_o one_o may_v come_v from_o france_n to_o trent_n not_o pass_v through_o the_o pop_n territory_n yet_o he_o must_v come_v through_o the_o emperor_n la●●s_n which_o be_v all_o one_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o time_n the_o major_a part_n have_v full_a authority_n when_o the_o lesser_a part_n can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o appear_v and_o be_v silent_a because_o silence_n presuppose_v consent_n but_o when_o it_o protest_v it_o have_v its_o place_n especial_o if_o the_o hindrance_n be_v from_o he_o who_o call_v the_o french_a orator_n say_v this_o can_v not_o be_v a_o lawful_a synod_n because_o the_o precedent_n confer_v private_o with_o the_o emperor_n ambassador_n nor_o communicate_v with_o any_o other_o and_o yet_o the_o speaker_n say_v the_o holy_a synod_n receive_v the_o letter_n and_o when_o the_o letter_n be_v read_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o precedent_n only_o be_v give_v in_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n they_o can_v not_o say_v these_o be_v matter_n of_o small_a importance_n see_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o divide_v the_o church_n but_o true_o those_o and_o other_o delay_v answer_n be_v devise_v until_o they_o be_v inform_v from_o rome_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o the_o french_a king_n be_v the_o more_o bitter_a against_o the_o reform_a lest_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o lutheranism_n the_o prelate_n at_o trent_n hold_v congregation_n now_o and_o treat_v of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o after_o another_o manner_n debate_v a_o new_a method_n of_o debate_v than_o they_o have_v do_v before_o because_o the_o prelate_n understand_v not_o the_o subtlety_n of_o the_o divine_n the_o precedent_n give_v
undique_fw-la et_fw-la ano_fw-la etpene_n erupit_fw-la qui_fw-la tibi_fw-la carle_n cruor_fw-la non_fw-la tuus_fw-la iste_fw-la cruor_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la at_o caede_fw-la cruorem_fw-la quem_fw-la ferus_fw-la hausisti_fw-la concoquere_fw-la haud_fw-la poteras_fw-la iii_o so_o soon_o as_o henry_n king_n of_o poland_n hear_v of_o his_o brother_n death_n he_o ●_z trouble_n of_o henry●_n ●_z return_v privy_o and_o quick_o and_o be_v crown_v king_n of_o france_n he_o renew_v the_o war_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n he_o take_v mons_fw-la monmorancy_n and_o quarter_v he_o for_o religion_n nevertheless_o they_o increase_v in_o number_n for_o the_o duke_n alanchon_n the_o king_n brother_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o condee_n join_v with_o they_o so_o that_o a_o peace_n be_v grant_v and_o proclaim_v with_o liberty_n of_o religion_n in_o the_o year_n 1576_o but_o that_o peace_n endure_v not_o long_o then_o henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n join_v with_o the_o reform_a again_o yet_o they_o be_v all_o in_o great_a danger_n in_o the_o year_n 1586._o the_o pope_n sixtus_n 5._o excommunicate_v the_o king_n of_o navarre_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o condee_n and_o declare_v they_o uncapable_a of_o the_o crown_n of_o france_n and_o order_v king_n henry_n 3._o to_o pursue_v they_o with_o arm_n the_o king_n of_o navarre_n send_v unto_o frederik_n king_n of_o denmark_n and_o unto_o the_o prince_n of_o germany_n for_o aid_n they_o send_v their_o ambassador_n unto_o the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o intercede_v for_o the_o protestant_n he_o return_v answer_v that_o they_o shall_v meddle_v with_o his_o subject_n no_o more_o than_o he_o do_v with_o they_o wherefore_o those_o prince_n assemble_v at_o luneburgh_n where_o be_v also_o the_o ambassador_n of_o navarre_n england_n scotland_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o pomer_n etc._n etc._n they_o conclude_v that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n shall_v not_o be_v forsake_v chytrae_n lib._n 28._o so_o they_o send_v 5000._o horseman_n and_o 20000._o foot_n but_o unhappy_o for_o the_o guise_n and_o other_o confoederats_n in_o liga_fw-la aurea_fw-la give_v they_o the_o foil_n in_o lorraine_n an._n 1587._o the_o next_o year_n henry_n iii_o understand_v of_o the_o presumption_n and_o intention_n of_o the_o guise_n and_o he_o call_v a_o parliament_n profess_v that_o he_o will_v give_v the_o chief_a command_v of_o his_o army_n against_o the_o hugonot_n unto_o henry_n duke_n of_o guise_n the_o man_n doubt_v of_o the_o king_n favour_n and_o yet_o upon_o those_o fair_a word_n he_o go_v unto_o the_o parliament_n he_o be_v kill_v in_o his_o bedchamber_n and_o his_o body_n be_v first_o burn_v than_o his_o ash_n be_v throw_v into_o ligeris_n his_o brother_n lewes_n a_o cardinal_n be_v hang_v and_o his_o son_n with_o some_o bishop_n be_v imprison_v within_o twelve_o day_n the_o queen-mother_n die_v through_o sorrow_n for_o the_o death_n of_o the_o guise_n ibid._n behold_v how_o god_n then_o bring_v peace_n unto_o his_o church_n they_o who_o before_o favour_v the_o guise_n secret_o do_v then_o profess_v open_a rebellion_n against_o the_o king_n the_o parisian_n create_v charles_n duke_n of_o mayen_n and_o brother_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o guise_n to_o be_v governor_n of_o paris_n and_o of_o the_o isle_n of_o francia_n the_o sorbonist_n deny_v the_o king_n authority_n and_o absolve_v all_o man_n from_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n many_o city_n join_v themselves_o unto_o duke_n charles_n to_o wit_n lion_n rouen_n orleans_n ambian_n etc._n etc._n the_o king_n assemble_v the_o nobility_n he_o proclaim_v unto_o all_o his_o subject_n pardon_v of_o all_o former_a trespass_n if_o now_o they_o shall_v return_v into_o obedience_n and_o he_o threaten_v loss_n of_o good_n and_o life_n if_o they_o return_v not_o henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n crave_v pardon_n obtain_v it_o and_o be_v make_v general_n of_o the_o army_n against_o the_o traitor_n the_o duke_n of_o mayen_n and_o aumale_a in_o aprile_a an._n 1589._o and_o the_o same_o summer_n he_o grant_v by_o edict_n at_o nantes_n religion_n liberty_n of_o the_o religion_n liberty_n unto_o the_o reform_a to_o assemble_v not_o only_o for_o exercise_v of_o their_o religion_n in_o their_o church_n but_o also_o for_o hold_v their_o synod_n yearly_a and_o so_o to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n which_o liberty_n no_o king_n of_o france_n have_v impede_v until_o this_o present_a time_n and_o unto_o all_o who_o be_v under_o the_o former_a edict_n of_o exile_n he_o restore_v their_o honour_n and_o good_n upon_o their_o submission_n then_o the_o follower_n of_o duke_n charles_n call_v the_o king_n a_o enemy_n of_o the_o apostolical_a roman_a church_n and_o august_n 1_o new_a style_n a_o jacobin_n monk_n have_v purchase_v leave_n to_o deliver_v a_o letter_n unto_o the_o king_n stab_v he_o as_o he_o be_v read_v the_o letter_n in_o the_o belly_n with_o a_o poison_a knife_n the_o villain_n say_v he_o be_v command_v by_o a_o angel_n to_o kill_v the_o tyrant_n and_o his_o death_n will_v bring_v peace_n into_o france_n the_o king_n fear_v not_o death_n at_o the_o first_o and_o immediate_o dispatch_v post_n to_o all_o the_o chief_a part_n of_o the_o realm_n give_v they_o notice_n of_o what_o be_v do_v and_o exhort_v they_o to_o constancy_n and_o loyalty_n as_o be_v due_a unto_o their_o sovereign_n before_o midnight_n he_o apprehende_v death_n and_o the_o next_o day_n he_o cause_v proclaim_v henry_n king_n of_o navarre_n to_o be_v his_o heir_n after_o the_o france_n henry_n 4_o king_n of_o france_n king_n death_n the_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n than_o in_o the_o lieger_n require_v a_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n to_o defend_v the_o roman_a religion_n and_o he_o swear_v to_o maintain_v even_o to_o hazert_v of_o his_o life_n the_o catholic_n apostolical_a and_o roman_a religion_n within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o that_o he_o will_v make_v no_o change_n in_o the_o exercise_n thereof_o and_o for_o his_o own_o person_n he_o will_v obey_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o godly_a and_o lawful_a general_n or_o national_a council_n and_o promise_v to_o procure_v it_o with_o all_o diligence_n and_o he_o swear_v to_o permit_v no_o other_o religion_n but_o what_o be_v already_o allow_v until_o peace_n be_v restore_v it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o provide_v and_o he_o confirm_v all_o the_o officer_n of_o state_n on_o the_o other_o side_n these_o and_o the_o ptince_n of_o the_o blood_n the_o other_o peer_n and_o many_o other_o acknowledge_v henry_n 4._o king_n of_o france_n and_o navarre_n and_o swear_v lojalty_n and_o fidelity_n unto_o he_o then_o both_o he_o and_o they_o swear_v that_o they_o shall_v revenge_v the_o villainous_a murder_n of_o the_o late_a king_n and_o the_o disturbance_n of_o the_o realm_n against_o all_o the_o rebel_n then_o the_o duke_n mayen_n be_v at_o that_o time_n call_v duke_n of_o guise_n and_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n deal_v with_o the_o pope_n that_o the_o king_n of_o navarre_n shall_v not_o be_v absolve_v from_o the_o former_a sentence_n and_o that_o faction_n declare_v charles_n duke_n de_fw-fr mayen_n king_n of_o france_n but_o the_o senate_n of_o paris_n not_o admit_v that_o any_o shall_v be_v king_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o blood_n royal_a he_o be_v not_o proclaim_v there_o in_o the_o year_n 1593._o henry_n 4._o take_v his_o oath_n to_o defend_v the_o roman_a religion_n he_o write_v a_o abjuration_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o send_v it_o unto_o the_o pope_n then_o he_o receive_v a_o pardon_n and_o the_o pope_n blessing_n and_o be_v absolve_v in_o the_o church_n of_o s._n denis_n by_o the_o arch_a bishop_n of_o bourge_n upon_o condition_n to_o embrace_v the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o to_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v observe_v within_o his_o realm_n to_o hear_v mass_n to_o choose_v mary_n for_o his_o advocate_n before_o god_n to_o breed_v the_o young_a prince_n of_o condee_n in_o the_o romish_a religion_n etc._n etc._n but_o though_o for_o earthly_a peace_n he_o profess_v popery_n yet_o in_o the_o parliament_n at_o rouen_n an._n 1597._o he_o give_v liberty_n of_o religion_n within_o his_o dominion_n one_o day_n he_o say_v unto_o a_o noble_a man_n i_o see_v you_o tooday_o at_o the_o mass_n yes_o say_v the_o other_o i_o will_v follow_v your_o majesty_n the_o king_n reply_v but_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v the_o crown_n of_o france_n for_o it_o iv_o some_o variance_n arise_v among_o they_o of_o the_o augustan_n confession_n lutheran_n the_o cause_n of_o variance_n among_o the_o lutheran_n 1._o whereas_o in_o the_o year_n 1547._o the●_n be_v press_v by_o the_o book_n call_v interim_n to_o accept_v that_o article_n good_a work_n be_v necessary_a unto_o salvation_n the_o divine_n of_o ●itteberg_fw-mi for_o peace_n sake_n do_v yield_v unto_o it_o but_o those_o of_o jena_n as_o be_v more_o wary_a think_v good_a to_o wave_v that_o phrase_n
public_o read_v i._o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o conference_n it_o be_v think_v good_a that_o a_o supplication_n be_v pen_v by_o the_o assembly_n concern_v those_o that_o shall_v vote_n in_o parliament_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n this_o be_v appoint_v to_o be_v pen_v by_o john_n row_n and_o robert_n pont_n and_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o assembly_n on_o mooneday_n ii_o concern_v the_o observation_n the_o assembly_n proceed_v as_o follow_v in_o chap._n 2._o the_o 3._o article_n be_v agreed-upon_a conform_v to_o the_o conference_n in_o chap._n 3._o the_o 7._o article_n be_v to_o be_v further_o consider_v the_o ten_o article_n be_v think_v plain_a in_o itself_o concern_v the_o advice_n what_o censure_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o non-residents_a the_o church_n think_v meet_v a_o civil_a law_n be_v crave_v decern_v the_o benefice_n to_o vaik_fw-mi for_o not-residence_n in_o chap._n 4._o the_o 9_o article_n agree_v conform_v to_o the_o conference_n and_o desire_v the_o penalty_n of_o person_n excommunicate_a to_o be_v horn_v or_o caption_n by_o special_a act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o treasurer_n or_o other_o who_o it_o will_v please_v his_o majesty_n to_o appoint_v in_o chap._n 5._o agree_v with_o the_o two_o supplication_n desire_v in_o chap._n 6._o the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o person_n of_o the_o elder_n agree_v conform_v here_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n want_v two_o leaf_n then_o be_v some_o what_o of_o visitation_n of_o college_n school_n and_o hospital_n and_o the_o book_n want_v other_o two_o leaf_n then_o concern_v commissioner_n of_o country_n or_o province_n and_o other_o two_o leaf_n be_v want_v the_o next_o assembly_n be_v appoint_v to_o conveen_n at_o edinb_n octob._n 24._o the_o historical_a narration_n say_v all_o that_o can_v be_v obtain_v in_o this_o parliament_n be_v a_o commission_n to_o confer_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o book_n the_o commissioner_n which_o seek_v the_o ratification_n of_o it_o take_v this_o for_o a_o shift_a see_v the_o book_n be_v before_o allow_v in_o the_o conference_n except_o four_o particulares_fw-la whereinis_fw-la be_v no_o difficulty_n and_o be_v now_o explain_v by_o the_o assembly_n and_o therefore_o they_o crave_v that_o at_o last_o so_o many_o may_v be_v ratify_v as_o be_v agree_v upon_o that_o be_v not_o grant_v for_o morton_n be_v the_o chief_a leader_n in_o this_o parliament_n in_o the_o assembly_n october_n 24._o david_n ferguson_n be_v choose_v moderator_n 1._o the_o noble_a man_n in_o the_o town_n be_v desire_v to_o be_v present_a 2._o at_o assembly_n the_o 36._o assembly_n the_o desire_n of_o the_o assembly_n come_v the_o lord_n chancellor_n the_o earl_n of_o montrose_n the_o l._n l._n s●ton_n &_o lindsay_n it_o be_v show_v by_o the_o moderator_n what_o care_n and_o study_v the_o church_n have_v take_v to_o entertain_v and_o keep_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o sincere_a word_n of_o god_n unmixed_a with_o the_o invention_n of_o their_o own_o head_n which_o their_o special_a care_n be_v to_o reserve_v unto_o the_o posterity_n and_o see_v true_a religion_n can_v not_o continue_v long_o without_o good_a discipline_n in_o that_o part_n also_o they_o have_v employ_v their_o wit_n &_o study_n and_o draw_v forth_o of_o the_o pure_a fountain_n of_o god_n word_n such_o a_o discipline_n as_o be_v meet_v to_o remain_v in_o the_o church_n this_o they_o have_v present_v unto_o the_o king_n m._n with_o their_o supplication_n at_o who_o direction_n certain_a commissioner_n be_v appoint_v to_o reason_n with_o these_o who_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o church_n there_o the_o whole_a matter_n be_v dispute_v it_o be_v resolve_v and_o agree_v except_o a_o few_o head_n and_o thereafter_o be_v present_v unto_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o article_n that_o the_o same_o discipline_n may_v take_v place_n and_o be_v establish_v by_o act_n &_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n but_o their_o travel_n have_v not_o succeed_v pray_v therefore_o the_o nobility_n present_v alswell_o open_o to_o make_v profession_n to_o the_o assembly_n if_o they_o will_v allow_v and_o maintain_v the_o religion_n present_o establish_v within_o the_o realm_n as_o also_o the_o discipline_n and_o policy_n already_o mention_v and_o to_o labour_v at_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n hand_n for_o answer_v unto_o the_o head_n after_o follow_v that_o be_v that_o his_o gr._n and_o counsel_n will_v establish_v such_o head_n of_o the_o policy_n as_o be_v already_o resolve_v and_o agreed-upon_a by_o the_o commissioner_n and_o cause_v the_o other_o to_o be_v reason_v and_o put_v to_o a_o end_n and_o that_o his_o gr._n and_o counsel_n will_v restore_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n concern_v the_o three_o and_o that_o none_o vote_v in_o parliament_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n but_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v commission_n from_o the_o church_n for_o that_o effect_n and_o that_o presentation_n of_o benefice_n be_v direct_v to_o the_o commissioner_n of_o country_n where_o the_o benefice_n lie_v and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o matter_n may_v be_v the_o better_a and_o soon_o exp_v that_o their_o lordship_n will_v appoint_v a_o time_n convenient_a thereunto_o as_o they_o may_v best_o spare_v that_o such_o brethren_n as_o shall_v be_v name_v may_v wait_v upon_o their_o honour_n the_o noble_a man_n answer_v that_o some_o of_o they_o have_v make_v public_a profession_n of_o the_o religion_n heretofore_o and_o all_o now_o declair_a they_o embrace_v the_o religion_n and_o shall_v maintain_v the_o same_o to_o their_o power_n and_o in_o the_o other_o particulares_fw-la they_o think_v that_o supplication_n be_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n and_o they_o will_v insist_v with_o the_o king_n for_o his_o answer_n and_o they_o will_v show_v they_o to_o morrow_n the_o time_n for_o that_o effect_n 3._o the_o act_n of_o the_o precede_a assembly_n concern_v the_o suspension_n of_o benefice_n the_o assembly_n otdaine_v it_o to_o stand_v in_o full_a strength_n until_o the_o next_o assembly_n 4._o james_n boid_a bishop_n of_o glasgow_n be_v require_v to_o submit_v according_a to_o t●e_v act_n of_o the_o last_o assembly_n give_v his_o answer_n in_o write_v as_o follow_v i_o understand_v the_o name_n office_n and_o reverence_n bear_v to_o a_o bishop_n to_o be_v lawful_a by_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n and_o be_v elect_v by_o the_o church_n and_o king_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o glasgow_n i_o esteem_v my_o call_n and_o office_n lawful_a and_o as_o for_o my_o execute_n of_o that_o charge_n commit_v unto_o i_o i_o be_o content_a to_o endeavour_v at_o my_o utmost_a ability_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o and_o every_o point_n thereof_o and_o to_o abide_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n from_o time_n to_o time_n if_o i_o offend_v in_o my_o duty_n crave_v always_o a_o brotherly_a construction_n at_o their_o hand_n see_v the_o charge_n be_v weighty_a and_o the_o claim_v to_o be_v lay_v to_o my_o charge_n be_v to_o be_v examine_v by_o the_o canon_n leave_v by_o the_o apostle_n 1_o tim._n 3._o as_o that_o place_n be_v point_v unto_o i_o at_o my_o reception_n thereby_o to_o understand_v the_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o for_o my_o live_n and_o rent_n and_o other_o thing_n grant_v by_o the_o prince_n unto_o i_o and_o my_o successor_n for_o serve_v that_o charge_n i_o reckon_v the_o same_o lawful_a as_o to_o my_o duty_n unto_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n in_o assist_v his_o gr._n in_o counsel_n or_o parliament_n when_o i_o be_o crave_v thereunto_o my_o subjection_n compelle_n i_o to_o obey_v it_o and_o it_o be_v no_o hurt_n but_o good_a to_o the_o church_n that_o some_o of_o our_o number_n be_v at_o the_o make_n of_o good_a law_n and_o ordinance_n in_o the_o do_v whereof_o i_o protest_v before_o god_n i_o intend_v never_o to_o do_v anything_o but_o what_o i_o believe_v shall_v stand_v with_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o a_o well_o reform_a country_n as_o also_o a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o live_n which_o i_o possess_v have_v be_v give_v for_o that_o cause_n this_o answer_n be_v read_v and_o after_o vote_v be_v judge_v not_o satisfactory_a and_o therefore_o he_o be_v order_v to_o return_v after_o noon_n with_o better_a resolution_n here_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n want_v two_o leaf_n and_o it_o appear_v thaet_fw-la asupplication_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n by_o these_o imperfect_a word_n follow_v vice_n universal_o abound_v within_o this_o realm_n may_v be_v punish_v and_o bridle_v and_o to_o insist_v with_o convenient_a diligence_n with_o his_o ma._n &_o counsel_n for_o grant_v the_o premise_n and_o to_o report_v 5._o all_o that_o be_v now_o or_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v depose_v from_o the_o ministry_n for_o their_o offence_n shall_v be_v charge_v by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o bound_n to_o dimitt_n their_o benefice_n ...._o and_o if_o they_o
by_o act_n of_o parliament_n to_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n now_o public_o profess_v within_o the_o realm_n so_o the_o deprivation_n of_o minister_n be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o same_o church_n as_o for_o the_o deprivation_n of_o bishop_n admit_v since_o the_o king_n coronation_n it_o be_v think_v meet_v that_o the_o same_o be_v likewise_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o same_o deprivation_n to_o extend_v alswell_o from_o his_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o feom_o the_o benefice_n that_o the_o same_o may_v be_v declare_v vaik_v and_o confer_v of_o new_a as_o if_o he_o be_v natural_o dead_a v._o cause_n of_o deprivation_n be_v heresy_n papistry_n deprivation_n cause_n of_o deprivation_n common_a blasphemy_n perjury_n adultery_n fornication_n incest_n slaughter_n theft_n common_a oppression_n common_a drunkenness_n usury_n against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o realm_n not_o residence_n and_o absence_n from_o his_o flock_n and_o office_n by_o the_o space_n of_o 40._o day_n together_o in_o a_o year_n without_o a_o lawful_a impediment_n allow_v by_o the_o next_o gen_fw-la assembly_n plurality_n of_o benefice_n provide_v since_o the_o king_n coronation_n be_v cause_n of_o deprivation_n from_o they_o all_o except_o one_o whereunto_o the_o possessor_n will_v adstrict_n himself_o dilapidation_n of_o the_o rent_n of_o benefice_n simony_n the_o form_n of_o process_n to_o deprivation_n shall_v be_v a_o libel_n indeprivation_n the_o form_n of_o process_n indeprivation_n and_o precept_n on_o 40._o day_n warn_v if_o he_o be_v within_o the_o country_n or_o 60._o day_n if_o he_o be_v without_o to_o be_v direct_v by_o the_o church_n and_o such_o commissioner_n thereof_o that_o elect_v or_o admit_v the_o person_n complained-on_a summon_v he_o to_o compear_v and_o answer_v unto_o the_o complaint_n and_o incase_o of_o absence_n at_o the_o first_o summons_n the_o second_o to_o be_v direct_v in_o like_a manner_n with_o certification_n if_o he_o fail_v the_o libel_n shall_v be_v admit_v to_o probation_n and_o he_o shall_v be_v hold_v pro_fw-la confesso_fw-la after_o the_o decreet_a pronounce_v if_o the_o person_n think_v himself_o wrong_v it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a unto_o he_o to_o use_v appellation_n un●o_o the_o next_o general_a assembly_n and_o intimate_v the_o same_o within_o ten_o day_n otherwise_o the_o decreet_a to_o have_v present_a execution_n 6._o the_o summons_n raise_v unto_o this_o montgom_n the_o troublous_a process_n against_o ro._n montgom_n day_n by_o the_o eldership_n of_o sterlin_n against_o robert_n mongomery_n sometime_o minister_v there_o upon_o their_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n against_o he_o from_o the_o function_n of_o the_o ministry_n to_o be_v allow_v by_o the_o general_n assembly_n and_o further_a trial_n to_o be_v take_v concern_v his_o life_n doctrine_n and_o manner_n and_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o assembly_n shall_v lay_v to_o his_o charge_n be_v read_v the_o same_o robert_n be_v present_a be_v require_v to_o answer_v he_o allege_v that_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o allow_v any_o thing_n deduce_v against_o he_o in_o that_o process_n because_o he_o be_v never_o lawful_o summon_v thereunto_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o that_o suspension_n from_o the_o ministry_n but_o only_o by_o bruit_n nor_o ever_o be_v the_o same_o intimate_v unto_o he_o and_o in_o so_o far_o as_o the_o process_n bear_v personal_a intimation_n unto_o he_o of_o the_o suspension_n he_o take_v instrument_n and_o offer_v to_o disprove_v the_o same_o in_o that_o point_n the_o assembly_n notwithstanding_o these_o allegeance_n find_v the_o say_a process_n decreet_a and_o intimation_n to_o be_v orderly_o deduce_v and_o the_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n well_o proceed_v &_o give_v reserve_v unto_o the_o say_v robert_n in_o the_o second_o instance_n liberty_n to_o seek_v reduction_n and_o remedy_n as_o appertain_v he_o be_v further_o accuse_v of_o contraveen_v the_o say_a sentence_n of_o suspension_n by_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n confess_v it_o and_o pretend_v ignorance_n of_o the_o sentence_n give_v then_o the_o lord_n of_o request_n deliver_v a_o writing_n from_o the_o king_n declare_v that_o it_o be_v his_o will_n the_o church_n shall_v not_o trouble_v the_o say_a robert_n for_o any_o thing_n concern_v the_o bishopric_n or_o that_o may_v result_v thereupon_o or_o for_o any_o other_o cause_n bypass_v commit_v by_o he_o but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v handle_v before_o his_o majesty_n this_o letter_n be_v reverent_o receive_v and_o read_v open_o and_o the_o brethren_n praise_n god_n that_o the_o king_n be_v please_v to_o send_v his_o commissioner_n unto_o the_o assembly_n as_o for_o the_o action_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n such_o attendance_n shall_v be_v give_v thereunto_o in_o respect_n of_o his_o highness_n that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v handle_v belong_v to_o civil_a power_n a●d_v nothing_o but_o upright_o sinceer_o and_o with_o just_a judgement_n shall_v be_v pronounce_v against_o he_o as_o they_o shall_v answer_v unto_o god_n and_o his_o majesty_n in_o sess_n 7._o a_o plain_a and_o large_a discourse_n be_v open_o make_v of_o all_o the_o diligence_n of_o the_o brethren_n to_o who_o commission_n be_v give_v in_o the_o last_o assembly_n concern_v ro._n mongomery_n and_o the_o copy_n of_o the_o charge_n give_v to_o he_o with_o the_o execution_n hereof_o with_o the_o which_o discourse_n and_o former_a confession_n of_o the_o say_v robert_n that_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o minister_v the_o sacrament_n after_o the_o decreet_a of_o suspension_n the_o assembly_n in_o one_o voice_n find_v the_o say_v decreet_a and_o sentence_n contraveen_v and_o violate_v by_o he_o and_o delay_v to_o decern_v upon_o that_o contravention_n until_o the_o next_o day_n at_o their_o first_o conveen_v the_o say_v robert_n demand_n the_o answer_n of_o the_o assembly_n whither_o they_o will_v accuse_v he_o upon_o any_o thing_n concern_v the_o bishopric_n or_o any_o thing_n result_v there_o upon_o and_o he_o require_v a_o copy_n of_o the_o large_a discourse_n make_v verbal_o by_o the_o brother_n to_o the_o effect_n he_o may_v answer_v to_o every_o point_n thereof_o he_o be_v bid_v remove_n till_o the_o assembly_n be_v advise_v and_o give_v their_o answer_n within_o a_o little_a space_n compeare_v john_n burn_v messinger_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o our_o sovereign_n lord_n letter_n deliver_v by_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o secret_a counsel_n discharge_v the_o brethren_n of_o the_o general_n assembly_n the_o moderator_n and_o his_o assessor_n from_o direct_v any_o citation_n against_o ro._n mongomery_n or_o use_v excommunication_n innovation_n slander_v or_o trouble_v he_o in_o his_o ministry_n for_o aspire_v to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o glasgow_n or_o for_o call_v or_o pursue_v his_o brethren_n for_o the_o same_o or_o for_o any_o promise_n make_v by_o he_o therein_o or_o for_o any_o other_o thing_n depend_v there_o upon_o in_o time_n bypass_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o rebellion_n and_o put_v they_o to_o the_o horn_n certify_v they_o if_o they_o fail_v he_o will_v denounce_v they_o our_o sovereign_n lord_n rebel_n of_o the_o which_o charge_n he_o deliveres_fw-la instant_o a_o copy_n subscribe_v with_o his_o hand_n the_o say_v robert_n be_v called-in_a again_o but_o he_o be_v go_v thomas_n macgy_n a_o minister_n be_v ordain_v to_o warn_v the_o same_o ro._n mongomery_n to_o compeare_v the_o next_o day_n in_o sess_n 8._o robert_n mongomery_n be_v call_v and_o compeare_v not_o but_o by_o william_n mongomery_n his_o proctor_n who_o produce_v a_o appellation_n whereof_o more_o follow_v thomas_n macgy_n be_v call_v and_o declare_v that_o yesternight_o at_o command_n of_o the_o assembly_n he_o have_v warn_v the_o say_v ro._n mongomery_n to_o compear_v at_o this_o hour_n before_o this_o assembly_n personal_o in_o presence_n of_o wa._n hay_o jo._n couper_n and_o an._n ker_n minister_n and_o that_o he_o promise_v to_o compear_v personal_o the_o same_o do_v these_o minister_n testify_v to_o be_v true_a then_o some_o enormity_n be_v produce_v and_o read_v where_o of_o the_o same_o robert_n be_v say_v to_o be_v guilty_a to_o wit_n 1._o negligence_n and_o corruption_n of_o doctrine_n also_o scandalous_a conversation_n for_o the_o which_o he_o be_v suspend_v 2._o contraveen_v of_o the_o suspension_n in_o glasgow_n sterlin_n and_o in_o the_o king_n chapel_n 3._o violate_v of_o his_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o presbytery_n of_o sterlin_n that_o he_o shall_v continue_v and_o wait_v upon_o his_o cure_n 4._o horrible_a oath_n in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o assembly_n deny_v with_o protestation_n before_o god_n the_o intimation_n of_o the_o suspension_n 5._o raise_v and_o execute_v letter_n and_o procure_v they_o by_o sinistrous_a information_n for_o overthrow_v the_o disiplin_n of_o the_o church_n 6._o usurp_a another_o man_n flock_n and_o that_o be_v accompany_v with_o arm_a man_n after_o the_o suspension_n 7._o charge_v the_o whole_a assembly_n under_o pain_n of_o
to_o understand_v the_o ground_n move_v they_o to_o that_o late_a action_n at_o ruthven_n to_o wit_n the_o danger_n they_o perceive_v of_o the_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o evident_a peril_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n and_o his_o estate_n and_o the_o confusion_n and_o mis-order_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n whereof_o as_o they_o feel_v good_a testimony_n in_o their_o own_o conscience_n so_o they_o crave_v the_o assembly_n will_v show_v their_o good_a like_n of_o the_o same_o and_o give_v ordinance_n to_o each_o minister_n at_o his_o church_n to_o declare_v their_o good_a ground_n and_o action_n unto_o their_o flock_n exhort_v all_o noble_a man_n &_o other_o whatsoever_o faithful_o to_o concur_v with_o they_o in_o this_o good_a cause_n to_o the_o full_a prosecution_n thereof_o then_o it_o be_v inquire_v by_o particular_a vote_v whither_o these_o peril_n and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o whereof_o the_o information_n be_v make_v be_v see_v or_o perceive_v by_o the_o brethren_n it_o be_v vote_v universal_o affumatiuè_fw-la and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o king_n mind_n may_v be_v also_o know_v in_o this_o particular_a ja._n lowson_n david_n lindsay_n and_o the_o king_n minister_n be_v direct_v to_o wait_v on_o the_o king_n to_o morrow_n after_o noon_n to_o confer_v of_o these_o danger_n and_o to_o report_v his_o answer_n their_o report_n be_v that_o his_o maj._n say_v there_o be_v peril_n to_o religion_n and_o indirect_a course_n be_v take_v to_o the_o hurt_n thereof_o whereunto_o his_o own_o peril_n be_v join_v for_o he_o esteem_v his_o stand_n to_o be_v join_v with_o the_o stand_n of_o religion_n as_o also_o he_o acknowledge_v sundry_a abuse_n in_o the_o realm_n and_o that_o all_o good_a man_n shall_v concur_v of_o duty_n to_o take_v away_o danger_n from_o the_o church_n &_o from_o his_o person_n &_o estate_n and_o to_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o common_a well_o as_o for_o these_o thing_n the_o noble_a man_n crave_v three_o be_v appoint_v to_o frame_v a_o act_n concern_v they_o and_o show_v it_o in_o the_o next_o session_n that_o form_n be_v send_v unto_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o town_n of_o edinburgh_n to_o be_v advise_v by_o they_o apart_o and_o then_o be_v vote_v and_o agreed-unto_a by_o the_o assembly_n vii_o the_o assembly_n consider_v the_o scandal_n by_o the_o impunity_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o grief_n of_o good_a man_n give_v commission_n to_o the_o particular_a presbytery_n after_o specify_v to_o summon_v and_o call_v before_o they_o the_o bishop_n in_o manner_n follow_v that_o be_v the_o presbytery_n of_o perth_n shall_v summon_v the_o bishop_n of_o murray_n the_o presbytery_n of_o edinb_n the_o bishop_n of_o aberdien_n the_o presbytery_n of_o mern_n the_o bishop_n of_o brechin_n the_o presbytery_n of_o dundy_n the_o bishop_n of_o dunkell_n the_o presbtery_n of_o glasgow_n the_o bishop_n of_o santandrews_n the_o presbytery_n of_o sterlin_n the_o bb._n of_o dunblain_n and_o isle_n and_o to_o accuse_v they_o and_o every_o one_o of_o they_o in_o all_o or_o part_n as_o they_o be_v guilty_a to_o wit_n of_o non-preaching_a and_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o negligence_n in_o doctrine_n &_o discipline_n haunt_v or_o frequent_v the_o company_n of_o excommunicate_a person_n waste_v the_o patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n set_v tack_n against_o the_o act_n of_o the_o church_n give_v collation_n of_o benefice_n against_o the_o say_a act_n and_o final_o for_o give_v scandal_n any_o way_n in_o life_n &_o conversation_n and_o after_o due_a trial_n process_n &_o conviction_n to_o put_v order_n unto_o every_o one_o of_o they_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o their_o offence_n and_o act_n of_o the_o assembly_n before_o the_o next_o meeting_n of_o the_o assembly_n as_o they_o will_v answer_v etc._n etc._n viii_o it_o be_v judge_v most_o expedient_a that_o college_n and_o univesity_n be_v visit_v and_o commission_n be_v give_v to_o certain_a noble_a man_n and_o minister_n to_o concur_v with_o such_o as_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n shall_v direct_v with_o they_o in_o visitation_n of_o all_o the_o college_n and_o to_o consider_v how_o the_o rent_n and_o live_n of_o every_o one_o of_o they_o be_v bestow_v how_o the_o doctrine_n be_v use_v by_o the_o master_n and_o regent_n whether_o it_o be_v correspondent_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n how_o order_n in_o discipline_n be_v keep_v among_o the_o student_n and_o as_o they_o find_v disorder_n or_o defection_n to_o take_v order_n there_o with_o according_a to_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n ix_o in_o sess_n 11._o the_o sumner_n or_o officer_z of_o the_o church_n declare_v that_o whereas_o he_o be_v direct_v to_o summon_v the_o king_n advocate_n to_o compear_v before_o the_o assembly_n he_o can_v not_o find_v he_o for_o he_o be_v in_o hermestoun_n a_o citation_n be_v direct_v to_o summon_v he_o to_o compear_v on_o wednesday_n next_o and_o answer_v whither_o he_o be_v the_o former_a of_o the_o slanderous_a proclamation_n in_o july_n against_o the_o ministry_n and_o for_o oppose_v the_o lawful_a proceed_n of_o the_o church_n certify_v he_o if_o he_o compear_v not_o the_o assembly_n will_v proceed_v as_o appertain_v in_o sess_n 17._o the_o king_n advocate_n compear_v and_o advise_v the_o assembly_n to_o consider_v whither_o they_o will_v allow_v their_o form_n of_o proceed_v against_o he_o be_v a_o servant_n of_o his_o majesty_n that_o he_o only_o be_v call_v upon_o the_o allege_a form_v of_o a_o proclamation_n give_v out_o in_o the_o ks_n name_n under_o the_o title_n of_o a_o declaration_n and_o conclude_v by_o authority_n of_o his_o counsel_n and_o as_o they_o shall_v find_v by_o their_o wisdom_n he_o will_v not_o contemptuous_o refuse_v to_o answer_v after_o consideration_n it_o be_v judge_v that_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o slander_n arisen_a by_o his_o person_n he_o may_v and_o shall_v give_v his_o declaration_n for_o remove_v the_o slander_n he_o be_v content_a and_o open_o take_v god_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o neither_o invent_v nor_o form_v nor_o pen_v that_o proclamation_n but_o at_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o duke_n he_o translate_v out_o of_o french_a into_o scot_n the_o last_o part_n of_o it_o and_o do_v nothing_o more_o in_o all_o that_o proclamation_n here_o with_o the_o assembly_n be_v satisfy_v for_o his_o part_n x._o the_o earl_n both-well_a declare_v that_o as_o he_o profess_v the_o true_a religion_n now_o preach_v within_o the_o realm_n before_o his_o departure_n so_o he_o have_v continual_o live_v and_o mind_v to_o live_v and_o die_v with_o it_o by_o god_n grace_n x._o some_o burgess_n of_o glasgow_n be_v summon_v to_o compeare_v the_o laird_n of_o minto_n compeare_v and_o confess_v his_o fault_n the_o discipline_n and_o order_n to_o be_v use_v against_o he_o for_o the_o offence_n be_v remit_v to_o the_o judgement_n and_o discretion_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o glasgow_n and_o so_o of_o john_n graham_n elder_n and_o the_o presbytery_n shall_v report_v what_o shall_v be_v do_v unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n archbald_n hegget_n john_n graham_n young_a hector_n stuart_n john_n sprew●ll_n elder_n wil._n hegget_n and_o robert_n stuart_n be_v call_v and_o compear_v not_o they_o be_v condemn_v of_o contumacy_n that_o be_v at_o several_a time_n summon_v to_o answer_v for_o haunt_v or_o use_v the_o company_n of_o ro._n mongomery_n after_o his_o excommunication_n be_v intimate_v unto_o they_o and_o for_o other_o enormity_n do_v against_o the_o church_n they_o have_v despise_v the_o voice_n thereof_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o make_v their_o public_a repentance_n in_o the_o church_n of_o glascow_n after_o the_o form_n to_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o presbytery_n unto_o who_o the_o execution_n of_o this_o sentence_n be_v commit_v colin_n campbell_n malc_n stuart_n hect._n stuart_n jo._n graham_n elder_n gavin_n graham_n and_o archb._n hegget_n be_v summon_v to_o answer_v for_o the_o violence_n do_v to_o jo._n howeson_n in_o the_o presbytery_n they_o be_v call_v none_o of_o they_o compeare_v excep_v john_n graham_n of_o who_o before_o and_o gavin_n graham_n the_o assembly_n ordain_v the_o other_o for_o their_o violence_n and_o disobedience_n to_o be_v excommunicate_a in_o the_o church_n of_o glasgow_n by_o d._n weemes_n with_o advice_n of_o the_o presbytery_n xii_o article_n be_v read_v and_o allow_v as_o meet_v to_o be_v propound_v see_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v grant_v by_o god_n the_o father_n through_o our_o mediator_n jesus_n christ_n and_o give_v to_o these_o only_a who_o by_o preach_v and_o oversee_n bear_v office_n within_o the_o same_o to_o be_v exercise_v not_o by_o the_o injunction_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o god_n word_n that_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n concern_v the_o liberty_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o church_n be_v so_o plain_o declare_v that_o hereafter_o none_o other_o under_o whatsoever_o pretence_n have_v any_o colour_n to_o
mean_a time_n all_o commissioner_n &_o presbytery_n that_o they_o give_v not_o collation_n or_o admission_n to_o any_o person_n present_v by_o these_o new_a patroness_n until_o the_o next_o general_n assembly_n v._o james_n gibson_n present_v a_o supplication_n crave_v that_o he_o may_v be_v hear_v to_o purge_v himself_o of_o contumacy_n for_o not_o compear_v in_o the_o last_o assembly_n and_o to_o repone_v he_o into_o his_o function_n and_o be_v admit_v he_o declare_v first_o before_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o conference_n which_o report_n that_o he_o have_v declare_v upon_o his_o conscience_n that_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o absence_n be_v not_o rebellion_n stubborness_n or_o ill_a will_n but_o only_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o good_a affection_n he_o have_v to_o the_o we_o will_v of_o the_o general_n church_n be_v inform_v that_o if_o he_o have_v compear_v and_o have_v not_o be_v punish_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n will_v be_v cast_v off_o the_o brethren_n judge_v this_o reason_n sufficient_a to_o purge_v he_o of_o contumacy_n but_o not_o to_o be_v repone_v vi_o three_o minister_n be_v direct_v unto_o his_o majesty_n to_o confer_v and_o understand_v by_o what_o mean_v religion_n may_v stand_v and_o be_v continue_v unto_o posterity_n vii_o all_o minister_n be_v exhort_v in_o their_o sermon_n to_o declare_v the_o prejudice_n do_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o the_o spoil_n of_o the_o patrimony_n thereof_o and_o public_o to_o oppone_v against_o such_o abuse_n viii_o the_o assembly_n consider_v the_o appear_a ruin_n of_o the_o evangell_n within_o the_o realm_n for_o want_v of_o provision_n unto_o minister_n and_o school_n and_o college_n give_v their_o commission_n unto_o certain_a minister_n to_o compear_v before_o his_o majesty_n and_o counsel_n on_o such_o day_n as_o his_o majesty_n shall_v appoint_v to_o confer_v and_o advise_v upon_o this_o head_n and_o to_o crave_v humble_o of_o his_o majesty_n that_o the_o assignation_n may_v be_v give_v about_o novenber_n 1._o unto_o minister_n &_o reader_n and_o that_o these_o which_o be_v already_o provide_v ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la and_o that_o other_o which_o be_v content_a with_o their_o assignation_n be_v not_o alter_v until_o they_o may_v obtain_v better_a provision_n and_o to_o report_v answer_n unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n ix_o the_o assembly_n give_v commissioon_o and_o authority_n unto_o the_o presbytery_n of_o edinb_n to_o call_v before_o they_o papist_n and_o apostate_n which_o shall_v happen_v to_o resort_v into_o that_o town_n or_o bound_n and_o special_o to_o summon_v the_o lord_n huntly_n seton_n etc._n etc._n x._o the_o assemby_n think_v meet_v and_o ordain_v that_o in_o time_n come_v so_o oft_o as_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n to_o conveen_v the_o gen._n church_n of_o this_o realm_n the_o first_o day_n of_o the_o assembly_n there_o be_v a_o public_a fast_o and_o humiliation_n both_o of_o the_o inhabitaint_v and_o pastor_n there_o conveening_a and_o the_o pulpit_n both_o before_o and_o after_o noon_n be_v occupy_v by_o the_o ordinary_a pastor_n of_o the_o place_n to_o the_o effect_n it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o give_v his_o blessing_n unto_o the_o convention_n and_o good_a issue_n unto_o their_o travel_n and_o intimation_n hereof_o to_o be_v make_v in_o that_o town_n the_o sunday_n before_o the_o assembly_n after_o this_o assembly_n james_n gibson_n see_v that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v restore_v into_o his_o function_n go_v into_o england_n and_o live_v there_o when_o certain_a news_n be_v bring_v of_o the_o disperse_v of_o the_o spanish_a navy_n the_o king_n cause_v solemn_a thanksgiving_a unto_o god_n for_o this_o deliverance_n to_o be_v give_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o kingdom_n begin_v in_o his_o own_o court_n for_o example_n unto_o other_o xxvi_o the_o hope_n of_o the_o papist_n now_o fail_v by_o the_o overthrow_n of_o that_o contrary_o 1589._o huntly_n subscribe_v the_o confession_n &_o practise_v contrary_o navy_n they_o begin_v to_o make_v a_o form_n of_o submission_n huntly_n at_o the_o king_n desire_n subscribe_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v reconcile_v unto_o the_o church_n but_o immediate_o he_o excuse_v himself_o by_o a_o letter_n unto_o the_o prince_n of_o parma_n then_o governor_n of_o flanders_n profess_v that_o he_o be_v so_o press_v by_o the_o king_n that_o he_o must_v either_o yield_v or_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o country_n or_o to_o have_v take_v the_o field_n which_o he_o can_v not_o we_o will_v do_v all_o hope_n be_v take_v from_o he_o by_o the_o return_n of_o the_o navy_n but_o in_o what_o he_o have_v fail_v he_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o amend_v by_o some_o good_a service_n see_v god_n have_v put_v he_o in_o such_o credit_n with_o the_o king_n as_o he_o have_v break_v his_o former_a guard_n and_o make_v he_o establish_v other_o about_o his_o person_n by_o who_o at_o all_o occasion_n he_o may_v assure_v himself_o and_o be_v master_n of_o the_o king_n and_o so_o when_o the_o promise_a support_n shall_v arrive_v he_o shall_v spoil_v the_o hetetick_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o make_v sure_a the_o catholic_n enterprise_n etc._n etc._n this_o letter_n be_v date_v at_o edinburgh_n januar_n 24._o 1589._o other_o also_o send_v letter_n to_o the_o same_o purpose_n and_o the_o jesuit_n lurk_v in_o the_o country_n advise_v these_o lord_n to_o attempt_v somewhat_o by_o themselves_o which_o may_v move_v the_o king_n of_o spain_n more_o ready_o to_o send_v they_o succourse_v a_o plot_n be_v lay_v to_o take_v the_o king_n from_o the_o chancellor_n maitlane_n and_o the_o treasurer_n the_o lord_n glames_z under_z pretence_n that_o the_o nobility_n be_v neglect_v and_o public_a affair_n ill_o manage_v they_o say_v this_o way_n they_o may_v procure_v the_o assistance_n of_o other_o noble_a man_n and_o the_o country_n will_v resist_v the_o less_o when_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o religion_n this_o plot_n goethon_a and_o in_o the_o very_a nick_n of_o time_n when_o huntly_n think_v to_o have_v catch_v the_o chancellor_n in_o the_o king_n chamber_n of_o presence_n the_o chancellor_n upon_o suspicion_n retieres_n escape_n and_o advertise_v the_o king_n of_o his_o suspicion_n the_o next_o day_n the_o king_n examine_v huntly_n and_o find_v the_o truth_n commit_v huntly_n into_o the_o castle_n of_o edinburgh_n but_o after_o a_o few_o day_n upon_o new_a promise_n give_v he_o liberty_n these_o papist_n will_v not_o yet_o cease_v in_o aprile_a huntly_n and_o these_o lord_n in_o anguise_n make_v a_o open_a insurrection_n at_o aberdien_n the_o king_n go_v against_o they_o when_o they_o hear_v that_o he_o be_v at_o cowy_a they_o come_v to_o the_o bridge_n of_o dee_n but_o their_o courage_n fail_v and_o they_o evanish_v afterward_o they_o offer_v themselves_o unto_o any_o punishment_n the_o king_n will_v impose_v they_o be_v put_v to_o a_o assize_n convict_v and_o ward_v the_o king_n delay_v to_o pronounce_v sentence_n at_o this_o time_n the_o assembly_n conveene_n at_o edinb_n juny_fw-fr 17._o james_n melvin_n be_v choose_v moderator_n assembly_n the_o 51._o assembly_n i._o the_o king_n give_v his_o presence_n he_o speak_v of_o his_o good_a affection_n towards_o the_o church_n and_o crave_v that_o patrick_n galloway_n be_v appoint_v one_o of_o his_o minister_n the_o assembly_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o moderator_n render_v his_o majesty_n humble_a thanks_n for_o the_o beginning_n he_o have_v make_v in_o suppress_v the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n they_o entreat_v to_o prosecute_v the_o business_n and_o make_v offer_v of_o their_o humble_a service_n to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o their_o power_n as_o for_o that_o he_o crave_v they_o acknowledge_v his_o majesty_n may_v command_v any_o minister_n within_o the_o realm_n to_o attend_v himself_o and_o ●his_n court_n ii_o it_o be_v appoint_v that_o at_o the_o conveen_a and_o lose_v of_o every_o assembly_n the_o role_n of_o commissioner_n shall_v be_v call_v and_o all_o absent_v be_v censure_v iii_o universal_a trial_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o all_o the_o minister_n within_o every_o presbytery_n and_o the_o trial_n to_o be_v of_o their_o life_n &_o doctrine_n especial_o of_o simony_n if_o any_o be_v suspect_v to_o have_v enter_v that_o way_n the_o trial_n shall_v be_v by_o question_n and_o preach_v and_o where_o any_o shall_v be_v find_v unqualify_v he_o shall_v be_v depose_v without_o respect_n of_o age_n or_o other_o condition_n and_o this_o trial_n shall_v be_v conclude_v before_o the_o next_o provincial_n synod_n which_o be_v now_o appoint_v to_o be_v septemb_n 3_o as_o every_o presbytery_n will_v answer_v unto_o god_n and_o his_o church_n iv_o it_o be_v appoint_v that_o in_o every_o presbytery_n they_o shall_v dispute_v concern_v the_o marriage_n of_o adulterer_n and_o report_v their_o judgement_n unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n v._o the_o act_n make_v in_o the_o last_o assembly_n concern_v the_o give_v of_o admission_n upon_o the_o presentation_n of_o late_a
a_o strong_a fort_n set_v up_o against_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o give_v thanks_o unto_o god_n for_o unity_n of_o spirit_n among_o themselves_o immediate_o after_o the_o dissolve_v the_o threasurer_n &_o prove_v of_o edinburgh_n crave_v conference_n with_o robert_n bruce_n robert_n rollock_n james_n nicolson_n james_n melvin_n they_o say_v the_o king_n notwithstanding_o the_o interloquiture_n intend_v not_o extremity_n against_o that_o minister_n but_o for_o maintain_v peace_n with_o the_o church_n he_o will_v pardon_v he_o if_o they_o will_v bring_v he_o unto_o his_o majesty_n and_o cause_v he_o declare_v the_o truth_n in_o all_o the_o point_v libel_v after_o deliberation_n they_o answer_v if_o it_o be_v but_o one_o man_n particular_a that_o be_v in_o question_n or_o danger_n his_o majesty_n offer_n be_v thankful_o to_o be_v accept_v but_o it_o be_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v grievous_o wound_v in_o the_o discipline_n thereof_o by_o the_o proclamation_n on_o saturday_n last_o and_o now_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n by_o usurp_v the_o judicatory_a thereof_o if_o the_o king_n have_v take_v that_o man_n life_n or_o of_o more_o he_o can_v not_o have_v wound_v the_o heart_n of_o the_o brethren_n more_o deep_o nor_o do_v such_o injury_n unto_o christ_n they_o can_v no_o way_n be_v content_a unless_o these_o thing_n be_v retreat_v and_o amend_v but_o must_v oppose_v such_o proceed_n with_o extreme_a hazerd_n of_o their_o life_n the_o messenger_n take_v up_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v much_o move_v and_o return_v unto_o the_o king_n with_o their_o answer_n the_o next_o day_n a_o gentle_a man_n of_o the_o king_n chamber_n come_v timous_o to_o one_o of_o the_o brethren_n and_o crave_v the_o bent_n of_o the_o doctrine_n may_v be_v stay_v that_o day_n not_o doubt_v but_o his_o maj._n will_v satisfy_v they_o it_o be_v answer_v the_o edge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n can_v not_o be_v blunt_v without_o evident_a appearance_n of_o amendment_n of_o wrong_n yet_o he_o and_o another_o go_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o these_o return_v report_v the_o king_n mind_n and_o offer_n to_o declare_v his_o meaning_n concern_v the_o proclamation_n and_o the_o interloquiture_n the_o brethren_n rejoice_v not_o a_o little_a they_o set_v down_o his_o offer_n in_o writ_n amend_v some_o point_n they_o write_v the_o ground_n &_o article_n of_o agreement_n that_o the_o k._n may_v see_v whither_o they_o be_v according_a to_o his_o meaning_n the_o brether_z which_o be_v direct_v unto_o he_o find_v he_o well_o content_a w●th_v the_o article_n he_o say_v he_o will_v abolish_v the_o two_o act_n which_o be_v proclaim_v and_o not_o suffer_v they_o to_o be_v book_v and_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n he_o offer_v to_o write_v unto_o the_o presbytery_n and_o satisfy_v they_o concern_v the_o interloquiture_n if_o they_o shall_v give_v he_o a_o band_n of_o dutifulness_n in_o their_o doctrine_n on_o the_o other_o part_n as_o for_o da._n black_a let_v he_o come_v and_o declare_v his_o conscience_n concern_v the_o libel_n before_o david_n lindsay_n james_n nicolson_n &_o thomas_n buchanan_n and_o thereafter_o he_o shall_v be_v content_a to_o do_v what_o they_o shall_v judge_v meet_a in_o the_o afternoon_n they_o return_v find_v the_o king_n change_v he_o direct_v david_n lindsay_n to_o crave_v of_o david_n black_a that_o he_o compear_v before_o the_o counsel_n and_o there_o confess_v a_o offence_n do_v to_o the_o queen_n at_o least_o and_o so_o receive_v pardon_n david_n black_a refuse_v to_o confess_v for_o in_o so_o do_v he_o shall_v acknowledge_v the_o counsel_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o approve_v their_o proceed_n to_o be_v lawful_a when_o they_o have_v summon_v he_o and_o admit_v ignorant_a and_o partial_o affect_v person_n lie_v under_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n at_o his_o procurement_n to_o be_v witness_n albeit_o he_o have_v ample_a testimoniall_n of_o prove_v bailive_n counsel_n church-●ession_a of_o the_o rector_n the_o dean_n of_o faculty_n principal_n of_o the_o college_n regent_n and_o other_o member_n of_o the_o university_n his_o daily_a auditor_n all_o which_o be_v produce_v for_o he_o but_o if_o it_o will_v please_v his_o maj._n to_o remit_v he_o unto_o his_o ordinary_a judge_n the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n he_o will_v depone_v the_o truth_n willing_o in_o every_o point_n and_o under_o their_o censure_n and_o ordinance_n if_o find_v guilty_a the_o king_n go_v to_o counsel_n david_n black_a not_o compear_v the_o deposition_n of_o the_o witness_n be_v read_v the_o point_n of_o the_o libel_n be_v declare_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o the_o punishment_n be_v refer_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o act_n of_o proclamation_n and_o whole_a process_n be_v register_v the_o doctrine_n in_o sermon_n sound_v free_o in_o the_o old_a manner_n the_o king_n crave_v conference_n again_o with_o the_o same_o minister_n after_o much_o reason_n they_o return_v unto_o article_n and_o ground_n of_o agreement_n then_o be_v produce_v a_o form_n of_o declaration_n concern_v the_o proclamation_n another_o of_o the_o charge_n and_o a_o missive_n unto_o the_o presb_n of_o edinb_n concern_v the_o interloquiture_n when_o these_o btethren_n have_v cause_v diverse_a thing_n to_o be_v amend_v they_o receive_v they_o to_o be_v commuicate_v unto_o the_o commissioner_n and_o other_o wait_v upon_o their_o return_v the_o form_n and_o declaration_n be_v consider_v be_v not_o find_v sufficient_a to_o repair_v the_o injury_n do_v but_o rather_o ratify_v the_o same_o other_o form_n and_o declaration_n be_v devise_v and_o a_o missive_n unto_o the_o presbytery_n as_o also_o a_o act_n of_o their_o dutiful_a obedience_n sundry_a conference_n pass_v betwixt_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n and_o the_o three_o minister_n above_o name_v but_o without_o success_n for_o on_o wednesday_n december_n ●_o these_o three_o minister_n report_v unto_o a_o frequent_a meeting_n of_o their_o brethren_n come_v from_o sundry_a province_n and_o join_v with_o the_o commissioner_n that_o the_o king_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o counsel_n refuse_v to_o accept_v that_o form_n of_o letter_n write_v by_o they_o to_o be_v send_v unto_o the_o presbytery_n because_o it_o import_v albeit_o indirect_o a_o annul_v of_o the_o interloquiture_n 2._o he_o refuse_v the_o act_n of_o dutiful_a obedience_n as_o not_o sufficient_a because_o it_o contain_v not_o a_o simple_a band_n of_o not_o speak_v against_o the_o king_n and_o his_o counsel_n but_o limit_v with_o certain_a condition_n which_o will_v ever_o come_v again_o into_o question_n and_o turn_v to_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o judicatory_a note_v this_o 3_o the_o form_n of_o declaration_n that_o be_v pen_v by_o the_o brethren_n be_v refuse_v because_o they_o import_v a_o plain_a retract_n of_o the_o proclamation_n and_o a_o acknowledgement_n of_o a_o offence_n 4._o the_o king_n will_v no_o way_n pass_v from_o the_o interloquiture_n nor_o suspend_v the_o execution_n of_o it_o until_o a_o general_n assembly_n but_o see_v the_o punishment_n be_v in_o his_o will_n he_o will_v declare_v it_o unto_o the_o brether_z in_o private_a which_o be_v transportation_n or_o suspension_n for_o a_o space_n they_o answer_v they_o can_v not_o agree_v for_o the_o reason_n above_o name_v in_o end_n the_o k_o crave_v to_o be_v resolve_v of_o certain_a speech_n utter_v by_o he_o to_o wit_n the_o treachery_n of_o his_o he_o be_v be_v disclose_v all_o king_n be_v the_o devil_n child_n and_o he_o require_v that_o david_n shall_v choose_v seven_o or_o eicht_v of_o 20._o or_o 25._o of_o his_o auditor_n who_o name_n shall_v be_v give_v he_o that_o by_o their_o deposition_n the_o cause_n may_v be_v resolve_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o shall_v desist_v from_o preach_v they_o answer_v they_o have_v no_o commission_n for_o that_o but_o to_o crave_v the_o acceptation_n of_o the_o form_n propound_v and_o they_o will_v report_v the_o answer_n december_n 9_o their_o report_n be_v hear_v the_o brethren_n perceive_v that_o nothing_o be_v do_v and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o enemy_n do_v attain_v their_o will_n therefore_o they_o think_v it_o not_o expedient_a to_o use_v any_o more_o common_v but_o by_o some_o brethren_n to_o let_v his_o majesty_n know_v how_o they_o have_v humble_o seek_v redress_n of_o wrong_n do_v to_o christ_n in_o his_o kingdom_n late_o by_o that_o charge_n proclamation_n interloquiture_n and_o process_n against_o one_o of_o their_o most_o faithful_a brethren_n how_o they_o have_v be_v most_o willing_a to_o have_v condescend_v to_o any_o condition_n of_o peace_n till_o the_o wound_n which_o christ_n kingdom_n have_v receive_v may_v be_v thorough_o cure_v to_o the_o intent_n his_o force_n and_o the_o church_n authority_n may_v be_v set_v against_o the_o common_a enemy_n but_o see_v they_o be_v disappoint_v they_o be_v free_a of_o what_o shall_v ensue_v and_o
dispose_a friend_n to_o provide_v sufficient_a stipend_n unto_o his_o church_n 10._o that_o he_o shall_v acknowledge_v his_o fault_n for_o which_o he_o be_v just_o excommunicate_a especial_o his_o apostasy_n and_o the_o burn_a of_o dunibr_n 11._o that_o he_o shall_v have_v a_o ord_n minister_v continual_o resident_a in_o his_o family_n with_o power_n to_o they_o to_o conveen_a march_n 22._o instant_a or_o soon_o if_o they_o can_v and_o to_o confer_v with_o huntly_n and_o to_o resolve_v in_o the_o article_n name_v and_o to_o report_v his_o resolution_n at_o the_o next_o gen._n assembly_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o dundy_n may_v 10._o next_o iii_o upon_o petition_n present_v in_o name_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o anguse_n and_o arroll_n the_o minister_n of_o murray_n and_o aberdien_n be_v ordain_v to_o confer_v likewise_o with_o arroll_n and_o the_o minister_n of_o anguse_n &_o mern_n be_v ordain_v to_o confer_v with_o the_o earl_n of_o anguse_n upon_o the_o same_o article_n except_v these_o concern_v the_o slaughter_n of_o murray_n and_o to_o report_v their_o resolution_n as_o say_v be_v and_o these_o commission_n to_o be_v extend_v unto_o the_o laird_n of_o bonitoun_n and_o newtoun_n if_o they_o offer_v themselves_o to_o satisfy_v the_o church_n and_o if_o these_o excommunicate_a person_n or_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v resort_v to_o any_o other_o place_n within_o the_o realm_n the_o assembly_n give_v full_a power_n and_o commission_n to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o presbytery_n where_o they_o shall_v happen_v to_o resort_v to_o travel_v and_o confer_v with_o they_o in_o the_o above_o write_v article_n iu_o article_n send_v unto_o the_o king_n by_o the_o ministry_n be_v 1._o it_o be_v humble_o crave_v that_o your_o majesty_n with_o advice_n of_o the_o estate_n present_o convene_v consider_v how_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o give_v good_a success_n to_o this_o present_a convention_n and_o that_o all_o thing_n here_o conclude_v tend_v to_o the_o peace_n and_o quietness_n of_o the_o whole_a estate_n within_o this_o country_n and_o the_o disappoint_a of_o the_o expectation_n of_o the_o adversary_n will_v publish_v by_o open_a proclamation_n the_o good_a success_n of_o this_o present_a convention_n together_o with_o the_o declaration_n of_o your_o majesty_n s_o intention_n utter_v by_o yourself_o at_o this_o time_n in_o presence_n of_o your_o estate_n declare_v your_o good_a will_n to_o maintain_v the_o true_a religion_n present_o profess_v within_o your_o country_n with_o the_o discipline_n adjoin_v thereunto_o and_o the_o minister_n to_o who_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o same_o be_v commit_v and_o to_o declare_v that_o your_o majesty_n will_n be_v that_o whatsoever_o law_n act_n or_o proclamation_n have_v be_v make_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o same_o shall_v be_v esteem_v contrary_a to_o your_o majesty_n meaning_n and_o to_o have_v no_o force_n nor_o effect_n in_o any_o time_n hereafter_o and_o that_o none_o of_o your_o subject_n pretend_v under_o colour_n thereof_o to_o molest_v or_o trouble_v any_o of_o the_o say_n minister_n but_o that_o they_o be_v under_o your_o majesty_n protection_n and_o that_o you_o will_v esteem_v the_o controveener_n as_o troubler_n of_o your_o estate_n and_o punish_v they_o according_o 2._o that_o all_o papist_n jesuit_n and_o excommunicate_n remain_v within_o the_o country_n be_v charge_v to_o pass_v out_o of_o it_o before_o may_v 1._o next_o or_o to_o satisfy_v the_o church_n and_o if_o they_o obey_v not_o before_o that_o day_n that_o sheriff_n provest_n and_o bailive_n be_v command_v to_o apprehend_v they_o within_o their_o bound_n and_o present_v they_o unto_o your_o ma._n or_o counsel_n to_o be_v punish_v according_a to_o law_n and_o if_o these_o be_v negligent_a in_o apprehend_v they_o that_o commission_n be_v give_v to_o certain_a most_o zealous_a person_n and_o willing_a to_o do_v the_o same_o 3._o that_o it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n according_a to_o your_o wont_a clemency_n to_o relax_v present_o the_o minister_n of_o edinb_n from_o the_o horn_n and_o suffer_v they_o peaceable_o to_o remain_v within_o the_o country_n as_o also_o to_o relieve_v and_o set_v at_o freedom_n the_o gentle_a man_n professor_n of_o religion_n who_o now_o be_v under_o challenge_n see_v your_o majesty_n know_v that_o their_o love_n to_o religion_n move_v they_o to_o these_o thing_n where_o with_o they_o be_v burden_v 4._o see_v edinburgh_n have_v that_o honour_n to_o be_v the_o chief_a burgh_n of_o this_o country_n and_o the_o place_n where_o religion_n since_o the_o beginning_n have_v be_v most_o flourish_a and_o now_o be_v both_o destitute_a of_o their_o own_o minister_n and_o call_v from_o time_n to_o time_n before_o your_o majesty_n which_o be_v no_o small_a grief_n to_o their_o heart_n in_o respect_n your_o majesty_n know_v that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o town_n be_v most_o willing_a to_o give_v your_o majesty_n all_o obedience_n and_o to_o hazard_v life_n and_o substance_n for_o your_o majesty_n stand_v that_o it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n favourable_o to_o deal_v with_o they_o according_a to_o your_o accustom_a gentleness_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v your_o majesty_n be_v more_o incline_v to_o show_v favour_n unto_o they_o who_o mean_v upright_o unto_o your_o highness_n than_o to_o papist_n we_o be_v move_v to_o crave_v this_o that_o all_o your_o subject_n may_v see_v a_o general_a agreement_n 5._o that_o it_o may_v please_v your_o majesty_n see_v david_n black_a have_v obey_v the_o thing_n be_v enjoin_v unto_o he_o to_o give_v he_o liberty_n to_o return_v to_o his_o flock_n and_o also_o john_n welsh_n and_z john_n howeson_n 6._o because_o many_o complaint_n of_o hurt_v &_o mutilate_v minister_n be_v give_v in_o before_o we_o namely_o ......_o we_o most_o humble_o crave_v that_o your_o majesty_n will_v take_v some_o substantial_a order_n for_o punish_v the_o offender_n to_o the_o example_n of_o other_o 7._o that_o provision_n be_v make_v for_o plant_v of_o church_n and_o that_o the_o augmentation_n and_o plant_n of_o new_a church_n ordain_v in_o the_o year_n 1595_o be_v allow_v follow_v the_o answer_n the_o first_o be_v grant_v in_o substance_n the_o 2._o be_v grant_v concern_v the_o first_o part_n of_o the_o 3._o the_o minister_n of_o edinburg_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v relax_v upon_o caution_n that_o they_o shall_v under_o the_o law_n as_o for_o these_o gentle_a man_n let_v they_o by_o mediation_n of_o friend_n be_v suitor_n for_o themselves_o as_o for_o the_o 4._o his_o majesty_n will_v no_o way_n trouble_v innocent_a man_n but_o only_o the_o guilty_a and_o mind_v to_o be_v at_o a_o point_n with_o they_o short_o concern_v the_o 6._o a_o commission_n be_v ordain_v to_o call_v and_o punish_v the_o offender_n and_o certain_a person_n be_v appoint_v to_o take_v order_n alswell_o for_o plant_v church_n as_o with_o the_o augmentation_n that_o be_v grant_v so_o it_o be_v write_v in_o the_o book_n b._n spotswood_n show_v that_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o depute_a minister_n concern_v the_o 13._o article_n be_v conceive_v by_o they_o otherwise_o as_o 1._o they_o hold_v it_o not_o expedient_a to_o make_v any_o law_n or_o act_n of_o that_o matter_n lest_o a_o door_n be_v open_v to_o turbulent_a spirit_n otherwise_o they_o do_v think_v it_o lawful_a to_o his_o majesty_n by_o himself_o or_o by_o his_o commissioner_n to_o propound_v in_o a_o gen._n assembly_n what_o soever_o point_v his_o majesty_n desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v in_o or_o to_o be_v reform_v in_o specie_fw-la externi_fw-la ordinis_fw-la see_v substantia_fw-la externae_fw-la administrationis_fw-la eccelesiasticae_fw-la est_fw-la plenissime_fw-la prodita_fw-la insacris_fw-la literis_fw-la ......_o for_o the._n 2._o their_o advice_n be_v that_o that_o the_o act_n already_o make_v which_o be_v hurtful_a to_o religion_n and_o prejudicial_a to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v discharge_v and_o no_o act_n to_o be_v pass_v hereafter_o concern_v religion_n without_o advice_n &_o consent_n of_o the_o church_n as_o for_o matter_n of_o estate_n mention_v in_o the_o article_n they_o crave_v a_o further_a explanation_n of_o that_o point_n he_o go_v on_o in_o the_o rest_n of_o they_o in_o that_o manner_n and_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n hold_v not_o these_o sufficient_a and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v hereupon_o ensue_v a_o reason_n which_o keep_v a_o long_a time_n and_o end_v in_o good_a agreement_n and_o so_o the_o minister_n be_v dimit_v to_o wit_n from_o the_o counsel_n and_o assemble_v in_o the_o ordinary_a place_n they_o correct_v their_o first_o answer_n in_o this_o sort_n to_o wit_n as_o it_o be_v write_v but_o how_o long_a time_n that_o reason_v do_v take_v up_o it_o may_v be_v understand_v that_o the_o assembly_n do_v conveen_v first_o in_o the_o church_n where_o the_o king_n commissioner_n desire_v they_o to_o go_v unto_o the_o king_n and_o all_o the_o speech_n on_o both_o side_n
their_o grievance_n and_o to_o give_v their_o advice_n unto_o his_o majesty_n for_o avoid_v any_o danger_n which_o may_v likely_o fall_v out_o in_o prejudice_n of_o the_o church_n as_o also_o if_o his_o majesty_n find_v he_o grieve_v or_o crave_v redress_n of_o any_o enormity_n do_v by_o any_o mini._n that_o they_o or_o any_o nine_o of_o they_o shall_v sit_v and_o cognosce_fw-la upon_o the_o matter_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o some_o of_o the_o discreet_a of_o the_o presbtery_n where_o the_o offender_n dwell_v as_o they_o shall_v tkink_v expedient_a final_o with_o power_n to_o propound_v unto_o his_o majesty_n at_o there_o convention_n all_o the_o petition_n both_o of_o the_o assembly_n in_o general_n and_o of_o every_o member_n as_o shall_v be_v mean_v unto_o they_o concern_v this_o part_n of_o their_o power_n to_o censure_v minister_n the_o king_n declare_v that_o howbeit_o it_o be_v general_a yet_o he_o intend_v nor_o to_o trouble_v the_o commissioner_n with_o any_o such_o cause_n unless_o first_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v that_o the_o presbytery_n where_o the_o offender_n shall_v dwell_v have_v both_o know_v the_o fact_n and_o have_v altogether_o neglect_v the_o trial_n of_o it_o or_o satisfy_v not_o his_o majesty_n with_o the_o punishment_n of_o the_o offender_n xii_o in_o sess_n 11._o forsomuch_o as_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o last_o assembly_n have_v upon_o a_o earnest_a zeal_n which_o they_o do_v always_o bear_v to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n given-in_a certain_a article_n unto_o the_o late_a parliament_n in_o december_n concern_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n and_o special_o have_v crave_v that_o the_o ministry_n as_o represent_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n within_o this_o realm_n and_o so_o be_v the_o three_o estate_n of_o the_o realm_n may_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n according_a to_o the_o laudable_a act_n &_o constitution_n make_v before_o in_o parliament_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o freedom_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n which_o their_o travel_n &_o endeavour_n proceed_v upon_o a_o godly_a intention_n they_o now_o submit_v unto_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o assembly_n desire_v the_o brethren_n to_o allow_v or_o disallow_v the_o same_o as_o they_o shall_v think_v most_o expedient_a to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o establish_v true_a religion_n within_o this_o realm_n whereupon_o the_o brethren_n be_v advise_v allow_v the_o honest_a and_o godly_a intention_n of_o the_o commissioner_n as_o conform_v &_o agree_v with_o sundry_a act_n of_o other_o assembly_n in_o which_o it_o have_v be_v find_v expedient_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v vote_n in_o parliament_n then_o the_o king_n willing_a to_o declare_v his_o good_a intention_n that_o he_o have_v always_o to_o the_o establish_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n declare_v that_o for_o the_o better_a performance_n thereof_o he_o have_v assist_v the_o commissioner_n in_o crave_v vote_n in_o parliament_n which_o their_o suit_n albeit_o in_o some_o part_n and_o in_o a_o certain_a manner_n grant_v by_o the_o parliament_n yet_o the_o aceptation_n thereof_o the_o form_n and_o all_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o person_n be_v reserve_v to_o the_o general_n assembly_n to_o be_v accept_v or_o refuse_v as_o the_o church_n shall_v think_v expedient_a and_o see_v he_o have_v anticipate_v the_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o assembly_n and_o desire_v the_o brethren_n to_o conveen_n at_o this_o present_a time_n especial_o for_o the_o cause_n foresay_a therefore_o he_o desire_v that_o the_o brethren_n will_v enter_v into_o a_o particular_a consideration_n of_o all_o the_o point_n of_o the_o say_a act_n and_o first_o to_o reason_n in_o public_a audience_n whither_o it_o be_v lawful_a &_o expedient_a that_o the_o ministry_n as_o represent_v the_o church_n within_o this_o realm_n shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n or_o not_o this_o question_n be_v debate_v in_o utramque_fw-la partem●_n and_o thereafter_o vote_v the_o assembly_n conclude_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a &_o expedient_a for_o the_o well_o of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o ministry_n as_o the_o three_o estate_n of_o this_o realm_n in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n in_o sess_n 12._o concern_v the_o number_n of_o minister_n who_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n it_o be_v likeways_o conclude_v that_o al●_n many_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v cho●en_v as_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v in_o time_n of_o the_o papistical_a church_n to_o wit_n bishop_n abbot_n &_o prior_n 51._o or_o thereby_o 3._o after_o reason_v it_o be_v vote_v &_o conclude_v that_o the_o election_n of_o these_o who_o shall_v have_v vote_n shall_v be_v of_o a_o mix_a quality_n and_o appertain_v partly_o unto_o the_o king_n and_o partly_o unto_o the_o church_n 4_o and_o because_o for_o shortness_n of_o time_n the_o brethren_n can_v not_o be_v present_o resolve_v concern_v the_o office_n of_o he_o that_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n to_o wit_n de_fw-fr modo_fw-la eligendi_fw-la of_o his_o rent_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o his_o office_n whither_o ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la or_o not_o of_o his_o name_n of_o the_o caution_n for_o preservation_n of_o he_o from_o corruption_n and_o such_o other_o circumstance_n therefore_o the_o assembly_n ordain_v every_o presbytery_n to_o be_v ripe_o advise_v in_o the_o particular_a head_n and_o then_o to_o convocat_n their_o synod_n through_o all_o the_o country_n upon_o one_o day_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o first_o tuysday_n of_o juny_n next_o and_o there_o after_o new_a reason_n upon_o these_o head_n that_o every_o synod_n choose_v three_o of_o the_o wise_a of_o their_o number_n who_o shall_v be_v ready_a upon_o his_o majesty_n advertisement_n which_o shall_v be_v upon_o a_o month_n warn_v at_o the_o least_o to_o conveen_v with_o his_o majesty_n together_o with_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o university_n viz._n an._n melvin_n john_n johnston_n ro._n rolock_n pa._n sharp_a ro._n howy_n ro._n wilky_a &_o ja._n martin_n at_o day_n &_o place_n as_o his_o majesty_n shall_v think_v expedient_a with_o power_n to_o they_o to_o treat_v reason_n and_o confer_v upon_o these_o head_n and_o other_o appertain_v thereunto_o and_o in_o case_n of_o agreement_n and_o uniformity_n of_o opinion_n to_o vote_n &_o conclude_v all_o the_o question_n concern_v vote_n in_o parliament_n but_o in_o case_n of_o variance_n to_o refer_v the_o conclusion_n unto_o the_o next_o general_n assembly_n xiii_o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o every_o presytery_n shall_v assemble_v themselves_o once_o every_o week_n in_o their_o full_a number_n at_o least_o so_o many_o of_o they_o as_o have_v their_o residence_n within_o eight_o mile_n to_o the_o place_n of_o their_o ordinary_a meeting_n 2._o that_o every_o member_n of_o the_o presbytery_n study_v the_o text_n whereupon_o the_o exercise_n be_v to_o be_v make_v 3._o that_o a_o common_a head_n of_o religion_n be_v treat_v every_o month_n in_o every_o presbytery_n both_o by_o way_n of_o discourse_n and_o disputation_n 4._o that_o every_o pastor_n have_v a_o weekly_a exercise_n of_o instruction_n &_o examination_n of_o a_o part_n of_o his_o congregation_n in_o the_o catechism_n all_o these_o head_n be_v ordain_v to_o be_v observe_v under_o the_o pain_n of_o incur_v the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n fourteen_o concern_v the_o protestation_n give_v by_o john_n davidson_n for_o himself_o and_o in_o name_n of_o other_o brethren_n as_o he_o allege_v protest_v that_o this_o present_a assembly_n be_v not_o free_a which_o his_o protestation_n he_o crave_v to_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o assembly_n it_o be_v inquire_v by_o the_o moderator_n if_o any_o will_v adhere_v unto_o that_o protestation_n none_o be_v find_v that_o will_v adhere_v unto_o it_o nor_o be_v of_o his_o opinion_n there-in_a and_o therefore_o the_o brethren_n discharge_v the_o clerk_n to_o insert_v it_o xv._o because_o the_o question_n of_o summary_n excommunication_n for_o lack_v of_o time_n can_v not_o now_o be_v commodious_o treat_v it_o be_v delay_v unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n all_o summary_n excommunication_n be_v suspend_v xvi_o because_o a_o certain_a member_n the_o number_n of_o member_n number_n of_o commissioner_n from_o each_o presbytery_n unto_o the_o general_n assembly_n have_v not_o be_v prescribe_v it_o be_v ordain_v that_o three_o of_o the_o wise_a and_o grave_a of_o the_o brethren_n at_o the_o most_o shall_v be_v direct_v from_o every_o presbytery_n and_o that_o none_o presume_v to_o come_v without_o commission_n except_o they_o have_v a_o special_a complaint_n and_o that_o the_o clerk_n take_v heed_n to_o receive_v no_o mo_z in_o commission_n but_o three_o and_o that_o one_o be_v direct_v from_o eyery_a presbytery_n in_o name_n of_o baron_n and_o one_o out_o of_o every_o burgh_n excep_v edinburgh_n which_o shall_v have_v power_n to_o direct_v two_o commissioner_n vii_o because_o it_o be_v report_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o act_n make_v against_o
which_o charge_n by_o diverse_a supplication_n given-in_a unto_o the_o counsel_n the_o empanel_v offer_v to_o reduce_v and_o to_o disprove_v but_o can_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o yet_o by_o virtue_n of_o that_o forge_a charge_n be_v they_o put_v to_o the_o horn_n albeit_o all_o those_o former_a intimation_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_n be_v true_a and_o have_v come_v to_o their_o knowledge_n yet_o can_v they_o not_o true_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o contempt_n &_o sedition_n in_o their_o meeting_n &_o proceed_v in_o respect_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n james_n 6_o parl_n 6._o an._n 1579._o act_n 92_o and_o law_n make_v in_o king_n robert_n 2._o and_o cite_v de_fw-fr verborum_fw-la significatione_n both_o show_v the_o civil_a jurisdiction_n &_o judgement_n to_o be_v free_a from_o all_o contempt_n of_o his_o majesty_n authority_n or_o of_o the_o lord_n of_o secret_a counsel_n albeit_o they_o shall_v proceed_v in_o judgement_n according_a to_o law_n notwithstanding_o any_o privy_a writing_n charge_n or_o command_v direct_v unto_o they_o in_o the_o contrary_a by_o his_o majesty_n or_o counsel_n or_o any_o command_n direct_v unto_o they_o under_o the_o great_a seal_n or_o signet_n or_o privy_a seal_n repugnant_a to_o law_n whereupon_o it_o must_v follow_v much_o more_o a_o spiritual_a judicatory_a which_o have_v not_o institution_n or_o ground_n from_o civil_a authority_n but_o from_o god_n word_n which_o be_v in_o nature_n different_a and_o distinguish_v both_o by_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n and_o law_n of_o the_o land_n albeit_o the_o judicatory_a be_v not_o institute_v yet_o be_v approve_v by_o act_n of_o parliament_n may_v proceed_v lawful_o notwithstanding_o any_o signification_n of_o his_o majesty_n will_n or_o of_o the_o counsel_n in_o the_o contrary_a and_o yet_o be_v free_a of_o all_o contempt_n or_o seditious_a proceed_n and_o in_o the_o assembly_n at_o dundy_n 1597._o sess_n 7._o the_o article_n concern_v no_o convention_n of_o pastor_n without_o his_o majesty_n knowledge_n and_o consent_n the_o king_n be_v present_a declare_v his_o consent_n to_o be_v extend_v unto_o all_o and_o whatsoever_o general_a assembly_n or_o special_a permit_v and_o authorize_v by_o his_o law_n according_o as_o they_o have_v warrant_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o be_v the_o most_o authentic_a form_n of_o consent_n that_o any_o king_n can_v give_v next_o the_o king_n commissioner_n be_v present_a with_o they_o consent_v unto_o their_o down-sitting_a acknowledge_v their_o authority_n by_o present_v the_o counsel_n letter_n crave_v answer_v unto_o it_o and_o consent_v unto_o s●ndry_a thing_n do_v there_o his_o consent_n be_v crave_v in_o every_o thing_n and_o obtain_v in_o some_o as_o for_o the_o formality_n of_o their_o proceed_n the_o work_n be_v such_o as_o concern_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o so_o therein_o be_v subject_n unto_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o overseer_n of_o god_n house_n so_o they_o submit_v themselves_o and_o their_o proceed_n to_o be_v censure_v &_o judge_v according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n by_o a_o lawful_a &_o free_a general_a assembly_n and_o in_o their_o apology_n write_v upon_o occasion_n at_o other_o time_n they_o make_v clear_v their_o formality_n as_o 1._o whereas_o the_o moderator_n of_o the_o last_o assembly_n be_v not_o present_a it_o can_v be_v no_o impediment_n of_o hold_v the_o assembly_n see_v his_o absence_n be_v through_o his_o fault_n 2._o his_o preach_n be_v supply_v by_o the_o teach_n of_o the_o ordinary_a minister_n of_o the_o town_n 3._o as_o for_o the_o election_n of_o a_o new_a moderator_n after_o prayer_n by_o the_o moderator_n of_o the_o late_a synod_n at_o their_o appointment_n liet_n be_v make_v and_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o remove_v they_o who_o be_v upon_o the_o liet_n such_o circumstance_n be_v not_o to_o be_v stand_v upon_o when_o the_o substance_n be_v in_o peril_n neither_o have_v they_o reason_n to_o allege_v this_o objection_n who_o have_v challenge_v it_o if_o they_o will_v call_v to_o mind_n how_o in_o the_o assembly_n at_o perth_n an._n 1596._o without_o any_o election_n or_o liet_n the_o late_a moderator_n be_v absent_a david_n lindsay_n at_o the_o nomination_n of_o two_o or_o three_o brethren_n enter_v moderator_n other_o who_o be_v present_v not_o be_v ask_v 4._o the_o ordinary_a clerck_n refuse_v to_o do_v his_o office_n because_o he_o be_v threaten_v by_o laureston_n therefore_o he_o be_v dispense_v with_o and_o of_o their_o number_n one_o be_v choose_v pro_fw-la illa_fw-la vice_fw-la as_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o synod_n &_o presbytery_n 5._o the_o place_n be_v not_o private_a but_o where_o the_o presbytery_n and_o synod_n sit_v ordinary_o and_o all_o be_v public_a as_o the_o counsel-house_n of_o dundy_n or_o edinburgh_n where_o general_n assembly_n have_v be_v hold_v as_o for_o their_o paucity_n that_o proceed_v partly_o from_o the_o weather_n and_o partly_o by_o a_o trick_n of_o the_o commissioner_n point_v in_o their_o last_o letter_n at_o another_o day_n then_o which_o be_v appoint_v before_o and_o in_o the_o assembly_n of_o god_n servant_n where_o the_o number_n be_v not_o define_v by_o a_o law_n rarity_n make_v it_o not_o unlawful_a if_o the_o meeting_n be_v ordinary_a and_o establish_v by_o law_n unto_o which_o all_o who_o have_v interess_n may_v resort_v and_o which_o may_v be_v judge_v lawful_a or_o approve_v by_o the_o next_o ordinary_a meeting_n as_o this_o have_v be_v already_o approve_v by_o many_o presbytery_n 3._o for_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v there_o be_v more_o than_o need_v a_o sufficient_a number_n to_o sense_n or_o begin_v a_o assembly_n by_o prayer_n and_o to_o adjourny_n it_o unto_o another_o day_n for_o cause_n move_v and_o a_o prayer_n in_o end_n this_o have_v be_v practise_v in_o the_o parliament_n and_o in_o church_n as_o at_o santandrews_n in_o april_n an._n 1597._o as_o for_o they_o who_o come_v after_o the_o dissolve_v they_o have_v the_o like_a commission_n and_o warrant_n to_o come_v and_o be_v stay_v as_o say_v be_v and_o when_o they_o come_v they_o can_v find_v no_o unlawfulness_n in_o the_o proceed_n of_o their_o brethren_n and_o see_v their_o approbation_n concern_v only_o the_o write_a process_n according_a to_o the_o subscribe_v copy_n which_o they_o receive_v equity_n require_v that_o the_o general_n assembly_n shall_v judge_v thereof_o before_o it_o be_v call_v unlawful_a in_o the_o write_a process_n they_o find_v no_o signification_n of_o any_o proceed_n charge_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o the_o allege_a contempt_n last_o it_o be_v against_o all_o order_n that_o commissioner_n direct_v from_o the_o presbytery_n shall_v be_v challenge_v for_o execute_v their_o commission_n namely_o when_o their_o execution_n be_v approve_v by_o their_o presbytery_n and_o the_o presbytery_n be_v not_o challenge_v after_o the_o advocate_n the_o prisoner_n so_o clear_v themselves_o and_o their_o cause_n that_o their_o adversary_n be_v astonish_v their_o doubt_a brethren_n resolve_v and_o every_o one_o that_o stood-by_a be_v satisfy_v then_o the_o interloquiture_n wenton_a not_o by_o vote_v formal_o but_o after_o secret_a round_v all_o the_o exception_n and_o defence_n be_v reject_v and_o the_o interloquiture_n be_v pronounce_v in_o name_n of_o all_o the_o assessor_n consent_v howbeit_o some_o make_a opposition_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n yea_o some_o of_o the_o counsel_n report_v that_o none_o consent_v but_o the_o earl_n of_o dunbar_n the_o precedent_n the_o chancellor_n the_o earl_n of_o montrose_n and_o the_o controler_n neither_o be_v the_o cause_n reason_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o assize_n the_o most_o part_n of_o they_o not_o have_v enter_v into_o the_o place_n of_o judgement_n until_o they_o be_v call_v to_o take_v their_o oath_n and_o to_o be_v enclose_v those_o be_v john_n livinston_n of_o d●nipace_n sir_n archbald_n sterlin_n of_o kier_n sir_n john_n forest_n of_o carden_n sir_n john_n hume_n of_o north-berwik_a james_n shaw_n of_o sawchy_n james_n swenton_n of_o innerkithen_n a_o papist_n henry_n stuart_n of_o craig-hall_n a_o dissolute_a man_n sir_n george_z hume_z of_o broxmouth_n george_n hume_n of_o the_o dean_n gavin_n hume_n of_o johnscleuch_n thomas_n livinston_n of_o pantoun_n robert_n livinston_n of_o westquarter_n sir_n patrick_n hume_n of_o polwart_n james_n gib_n young_a of_o caribben_n and_o alexand._n hume_n of_o rentoun_n craig-hall_n be_v choose_v chancellor_n of_o the_o assize_n or_o foreman_n of_o the_o jury_n their_o advocate_n exhort_v the_o jury_n to_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o naked_a deed_n of_o decline_a that_o be_v the_o dittay_n of_o the_o empanel_v but_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o deed_n to_o wit_n a_o treasonous_a declinature_n which_o be_v to_o be_v try_v therefore_o will_v they_o to_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v treason_n or_o not_o but_o the_o king_n advocate_n charge_v they_o to_o find_v only_o whether_o the_o prisoner_n have_v decline_v the_o counsel_n
government_n he_o shall_v neither_o usurp_v nor_o acclaim_v to_o himself_o any_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n further_o than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o brethren_n excep_v he_o be_v emploje_v by_o his_o brethren_n under_o the_o pain_n of_o deprivation_n and_o if_o he_o usurp_v any_o part_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o the_o presbytery_n synod_n or_o general_n assembly_n oppone_v and_o make_v any_o impediment_n thereunto_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v after_o the_o impediment_n it_o shall_v be_v null_a ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la without_o any_o declarature_n 7._o in_o presbytery_n provincial_a &_o general_a affembly_n he_o shall_v behave_v himself_o in_o all_o thing_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o censure_n as_o any_o brother_n of_o the_o presbytery_n 8._o at_o his_o admission_n to_o his_o office_n of_o commissionery_n these_o and_o all_o other_o part_n necessary_a he_o shall_v swear_v and_o subscrlbe_n to_o fulfil_v under_o the_o penalty_n aforesaid_a and_o otherwise_o not_o to_o be_v admit_v 9_o if_o he_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o general_n assembly_n synod_n or_o presbytery_n from_o the_o office_n of_o the_o ministry_n he_o shall_v also_o lose_v his_o vote_n in_o parliament_n ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la and_o his_o benefice_n shall_v vaik_fw-mi and_o further_a caution_n to_o be_v make_v as_o the_o church_n please_v and_o find_v occasion_n moreover_o concern_v his_o name_n that_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n by_o uniform_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o brethren_n it_o be_v advise_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v call_v the_o commissioner_n of_o such_o a_o place_n and_o if_o the_o parliament_n may_v be_v induce_v by_o his_o majesty_n moyan_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o name_n it_o shall_v stand_v so_o if_o not_o the_o general_n assembly_n shall_v conclude_v this_o question_n concern_v his_o name_n the_o question_n be_v propound_v whither_o the_o commission_n of_o he_o who_o in_o name_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v vote_n in_o parliament_n shall_v endure_v for_o his_o life_n time_n except_o sin_n and_o offence_n intervene_v or_o for_o a_o short_a time_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o church_n the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v of_o different_a opinion_n think_v good_a to_o refer_v this_o question_n unto_o the_o general_n assembly_n these_o conclusion_n be_v read_v in_o public_a audience_n of_o the_o assembly_n be_v allow_v and_o approve_v and_o it_o be_v judge_v expedient_a that_o these_o caution_n and_o what_o other_o shall_v be_v conclude_v by_o the_o assembly_n shall_v be_v insert_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n that_o shall_v be_v make_v for_o confirmation_n of_o the_o vote_n in_o parliament_n unto_o the_o church_n as_o most_o necessary_a and_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o same_o in_o sess_n 8._o the_o assembly_n decerne_v 1._o that_o he_o who_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n shall_v annuatim_fw-la give_v account_n of_o his_o commission_n obtain_v from_o the_o assembly_n and_o lay_v down_o the_o same_o at_o their_o foot_n to_o be_v continue_v or_o alter_v from_o it_o by_o his_o maj._n and_o the_o assembly_n as_o the_o assembly_n with_o consent_n of_o his_o majesty_n shall_v think_v most_o expedient_a to_o the_o well_o of_o the_o church_n 2._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o none_o of_o they_o which_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n shall_v come_v as_o commissioner_n to_o any_o general_n assembly_n nor_o have_v vote_n there_o in_o any_o time_n come_v excep_v he_o be_v authorize_v with_o commission_n from_o his_o own_o presbytery_n to_o that_o effect_n 3._o it_o be_v decern_v by_o the_o assembly_n that_o crimen_fw-la ambitus_fw-la shall_v be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n of_o deprivation_n of_o he_o that_o shall_v have_v vote_n in_o parliament_n 4._o it_o be_v ordain_v that_o every_o minister_n shall_v intimate_v this_o general_n that_o the_o vote_n in_o parliament_n be_v conclude_v by_o the_o assembly_n and_o that_o none_o utter_v speech_n in_o pulpit_n contrary_a to_o the_o same_o ix_o the_o like_a general_a commission_n as_o before_o in_o every_o point_n be_v give_v unto_o the_o same_o person_n almost_o with_o addition_n of_o four_o or_o five_o more_o x._o because_o sundry_a part_n of_o the_o country_n be_v through_o defect_n of_o visitation_n become_v almost_o desolate_a certain_a visitor_n be_v direct_v to_o visit_v these_o part_n namely_o kircudbright_n murray_n caitnes_n orknay_n nithsdeal_o with_o power_n to_o inquire_v into_o the_o life_n doctrine_n and_o conversation_n of_o minister_n to_o try_v out_o the_o sayer_n &_o hearer_n of_o mass_n to_o plant_v and_o transport_v minister_n as_o they_o shall_v think_v expedient_a for_o the_o well_o of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o report_v their_o diligence_n unto_o the_o next_o assembly_n xi_o the_o next_o assembly_n be_v appoint_v to_o be_v at_o santand_fw-mi the_o last_o tuysday_n of_o july_n in_o 1601._o year_n the_o historic_n narration_n have_v some_o observation_n on_o this_o assembly_n 1._o peter_n blackburn_n teach_v good_a &_o sound_a doctrine_n at_o the_o open_n of_o the_o assembly_n but_o be_v induce_v or_o rather_o threaten_v to_o recant_v after_o noon_n before_o the_o whole_a assembly_n this_o be_v a_o step_n to_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o new_a stamp_n 2._o the_o next_o policy_n be_v to_o draw_v the_o chief_a opposite_n upon_o the_o privy_a conference_n that_o they_o may_v know_v how_o to_o deal_v in_o public_a 3._o in_o the_o privy_a conference_n four_o be_v choose_v on_o each_o side_n to_o confer_v and_o reason_n apart_o on_o hope_n that_o upon_o their_o agreement_n will_v follow_v a_o universal_a harmony_n as_o be_v pretend_v but_o indeed_o to_o essay_n whither_o opponent_n may_v be_v draw_v unto_o they_o if_o not_o to_o proceed_v after_o their_o wont_a manner_n some_o good_a be_v expect_v if_o their_o conference_n have_v not_o be_v interrupt_v by_o the_o king_n they_o be_v enjoin_v to_o set_v down_o their_o reason_n in_o writ_n they_o bestow_v a_o afternoon_n begin_v at_o the_o very_a ground_n to_o define_v a_o parliament_n and_o what_o it_o be_v to_o vote_n in_o parliament_n etc._n etc._n the_o four_o opponent_n be_v square_a and_o plain_a but_o the_o king_n be_v inform_v that_o night_n will_v suffer_v no_o more_o of_o that_o reason_n but_o will_v have_v it_o before_o himself_o and_o some_o of_o the_o counsel_n in_o the_o privy_a conference_n they_o who_o stand_v for_o the_o establish_a discipline_n prove_v by_o many_o reason_n that_o the_o act_n of_o the_o assembly_n at_o dundy_n ann._n 1598._o be_v take_v according_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v flat_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n their_o reason_n be_v so_o strong_a that_o they_o be_v all_o grant_v to_o wit_n as_o it_o seem_v in_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n but_o only_a it_o be_v deny_v that_o any_o such_o thing_n will_v follow_v as_o be_v allege_v in_o the_o minor_n they_o deny_v they_o be_v to_o bear_v any_o charge_n in_o thing_n civil_a or_o make_v law_n judge_v upon_o forfeiture_n meddle_v with_o civil_a affair_n confound_v jurisdiction_n &c_n &c_n ......._o 4._o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o general_n assembly_n i_o mean_v so_o many_o as_o be_v privy_a to_o the_o course_n be_v aspire_v to_o bishopric_n and_o have_v their_o meeting_n with_o the_o king_n for_o such_o purpose_n and_o find_v this_o conference_n not_o to_o succeed_v as_o they_o will_v reasolve_v to_o hold_v the_o gripp_v they_o have_v get_v the_o act_n already_o past_a must_v not_o come_v into_o question_n in_o the_o public_a their_o chief_n care_n be_v to_o obtain_v a_o ratification_n of_o the_o caution_n conclude_v at_o falkland_n and_o consent_n unto_o the_o perpetuty_n of_o the_o voter_n in_o parliament_n 5._o the_o king_n from_o his_o rise_n in_o the_o morning_n till_o he_o go_v late_o to_o bed_n be_v so_o busy_a with_o minister_n that_o the_o courtier_n say_v jeer_o they_o can_v have_v no_o access_n unto_o his_o majesty_n for_o minister_n 6._o andrew_n melvin_n be_v command_v to_o keep_v his_o lodging_n albeit_o he_o be_v send_v in_o commission_n from_o his_o presbytery_n 7._o in_o the_o public_a assembly_n it_o be_v oft_o speak_v that_o episcopacy_n be_v not_o intend_v burr_n only_o the_o vote_n of_o minister_n in_o parliament_n to_o vindicat_fw-la the_o church_n from_o contempt_n and_o poverty_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v opposition_n make_v that_o the_o perpetuity_n unto_o the_o voter_n in_o parliament_n ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la or_o culpam_fw-la can_v not_o be_v obtain_v one_o and_o fifty_o vote_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v choose_v annuatim_fw-la by_o every_o presbytery_n in_o stead_n of_o annuatim_fw-la some_o cry_v away_o with_o he_o forty_o eight_o of_o who_o many_o be_v minister_n vote_v ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la or_o ad_fw-la defectum_fw-la the_o aspirer_n be_v so_o grieve_v that_o they_o conveen_v apart_o and_o devise_v a_o gloss_n draw_v near_o to_o that_o which_o be_v conclude_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o commissioner_n
voter_fw-mi in_o parliament_n shall_v give_v account_n annuatim_fw-la and_o lay_v down_o his_o office_n at_o the_o foot_n of_o the_o assembly_n to_o be_v continue_v or_o alter_v as_o etc._n etc._n they_o communicate_v this_o device_n unto_o the_o king_n who_o set_v down_o the_o conclusion_n so_o and_o so_o it_o be_v write_v the_o bb._n do_v never_o attempt_v to_o annual_a these_o caution_n and_o so_o these_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o assembly_n with_o consent_n of_o the_o king_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o depose_v and_o excommunicate_v the_o bb._n in_o the_o astembly_n in_o the_o year_n 1638._o then_o the_o historical_a narration_n set_v down_o some_o prank_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o commissioner_n 1._o the_o minister_n of_o edinburgh_n be_v charge_v august_n 12._o by_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o town_n all_o excep_a the_o two_o young_a man_n that_o enter_v last_o and_o discharge_v to_o preach_v within_o the_o king_n dominion_n because_o they_o will_v not_o profess_v unto_o the_o people_n that_o they_o be_v persuade_v the_o earl_n of_o goury_n and_o his_o brother_n will_v have_v kill_v the_o king_n in_o perth_n on_o the_o five_o day_n of_o august_n and_o persuade_v the_o people_n to_o believe_v it_o they_o proffer_v to_o thank_v god_n for_o the_o king_n delivery_n out_o of_o danger_n to_o rehearse_v faithful_o unto_o the_o people_n the_o history_n as_o his_o majesty_n have_v deliver_v it_o and_o to_o speak_v nothing_o in_o the_o contrary_n but_o that_o be_v not_o accept_v not_o long_o after_o their_o place_n be_v declare_v wake_fw-mi by_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o general_n assembly_n september_n 5._o they_o be_v charge_v to_o compear_v before_o the_o king_n and_o counsel_n in_o sterlin_n to_o hear_v further_a punishment_n decern_v against_o they_o william_n watson_n john_n hall_n walter_n balcanquall_a and_o james_n balfour_v profess_v that_o they_o be_v resolve_v and_o be_v appoint_v to_o declair_v their_o resolution_n in_o other_o church_n as_o be_v design_v unto_o they_o and_o to_o confess_v their_o error_n and_o incredulity_n robert_n rolock_n be_v depart_v this_o life_n in_o the_o year_n precede_a the_o court_n say_v these_o be_v send_v to_o make_v their_o repentance_n robert_n bruce_n profess_v that_o he_o be_v not_o yet_o resolve_v and_o crave_v time_n to_o try_v &_o search_v he_o be_v ordain_v to_o depart_v out_o of_o the_o country_n not_o to_o teturn_v into_o scotland_n nor_o england_n without_o his_o majesty_n licence_n and_o to_o remain_v in_o airth_n until_o he_o depart_v 2._o the_o king_n with_o advice_n of_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o general_n assembly_n call_v a_o meeting_n of_o two_o out_o of_o every_o synod_n to_o be_v hold_v at_o edinburgh_n in_o october_n to_o take_v order_n with_o the_o church_n of_o edinburgh_n and_o to_o consult_v with_o the_o commissioner_n upon_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v propound_v unto_o the_o ensue_a parliament_n at_o this_o meeting_n the_o king_n be_v earnest_a to_o have_v other_o plant_v in_o the_o minister_n room_n of_o edinburgh_n albeit_o they_o have_v declare_v their_o resolution_n as_o they_o be_v enjoin_v excep_v john_n hall_n who_o say_v the_o king_n i_o will_v take_v in_o my_o own_o hand_n it_o be_v answer_v that_o can_v not_o be_v do_v unless_o they_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o church_n or_o cut_v off_o by_o some_o civil_a judicatory_a the_o king_n be_v so_o earnest_a that_o they_o say_v they_o will_v try_v the_o minister_n own_o mind_n whither_o they_o be_v content_a with_o transportation_n rather_o than_o suffer_v their_o church_n to_o be_v destitute_a william_n scot_n james_n melvin_n and_o john_n carmichell_n be_v direct_v to_o deal_v with_o they_o when_o these_o be_v go_v unto_o the_o minister_n the_o king_n and_o commissioner_n propound_v to_o name_v three_o to_o vote_n at_o the_o parliament_n which_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o november_n and_o obtain_v it_o to_o wit_n peter_n blackburn_n david_n lindsay_n and_o goerge_n gladstanes_n be_v name_v without_o regard_n of_o the_o order_n and_o caution_n conclude_v in_o the_o late_a assembly_n the_o three_o that_o weresent_a forth_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o matter_n till_o the_o meeting_n be_v dissolve_v nor_o be_v the_o church_n of_o edinb_n provide_v before_o the_o next_o general_n assembly_n 3._o in_o the_o parliament_n where_o goury_n be_v forfeit_v these_o three_o which_o be_v name_v before_o do_v vote_n david_n lindsay_n as_o bishop_n of_o ross_n pater_fw-la blackburn_n as_o bishop_n of_o aberdien_n &_o george_n glaidstanes_n as_o bishop_n of_o caitnes_n in_o the_o synod_n of_o fife_n at_o santand_fw-mi in_o february_n an._n 1601._o george_n glaidstanes_n be_v accuse_v and_o confess_v that_o he_o have_v sit_v in_o the_o parliament_n and_o have_v answer_v as_o bishop_n of_o caitnes_n when_o he_o be_v call_v but_o say_v he_o it_o be_v against_o my_o heart_n nor_o will_v they_o name_v i_o otherwise_o such_o be_v the_o slight_a shift_n they_o have_v when_o they_o be_v find_v guilty_a of_o any_o breach_n da._n lindsay_n be_v rebuke_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o lothian_n in_o aprile_a so_o soon_o be_v the_o caution_n or_o caveat_n contemn_v i_o have_v write_v of_o these_o assembly_n particular_o the_o rather_o that_o they_o have_v never_o be_v in_o print_n before_o and_o many_o either_o of_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n and_o some_o of_o both_o have_v publish_v much_o venom_n against_o they_o and_o now_o i_o conceive_v that_o some_o may_v think_v see_v these_o assembly_n be_v confirm_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n how_o leave_v they_o off_o therefore_o i_o adjoin_v a_o continuation_n of_o they_o unto_o their_o end_n a_o continuation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o scotland_n assembly_n i._o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o assembly_n have_v a_o meeting_n with_o 1601._o 1601._o some_o other_o minister_n at_o bruntelan_n in_o march_n year_n 1601_o there_o they_o agree_v to_o entreat_v the_o king_n for_o restore_v the_o minister_n of_o edinburgh_n unto_o their_o place_n and_o for_o a_o free_a nationall_n assembly_n to_o determine_v all_o matter_n then_o in_o controversy_n the_o commissioner_n promise_v to_o deal_v earnest_o in_o both_o but_o how_o do_v they_o perform_v their_o promise_n say_v the_o author_n of_o the_o historical_a narration_n concern_v the_o first_o some_o of_o they_o say_v unto_o the_o king_n sir_n they_o be_v out_o now_o blame_v not_o we_o but_o yourself_o if_o ever_o they_o offend_v you_o again_o and_o in_o the_o other_o point_n a_o assembly_n be_v call_v but_o no_o controversy_n be_v handle_v at_o that_o time_n john_n hamilton_n and_o edmund_n hay_n two_o jesuit_n come_v into_o the_o country_n the_o king_n understanding_n that_o they_o be_v factious_a and_o busy_a man_n send_v forth_o a_o proclamation_n inhibit_v they_o to_o remain_v under_o pain_n of_o treason_n and_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v not_o otherwise_o judge_n of_o such_o who_o shall_v receive_v they_o but_o as_o the_o pursuer_n of_o his_o own_o life_n nevertheless_o they_o be_v keep_v in_o the_o north_n part_n until_o after_o some_o year_n john_n hamilton_n be_v apprehend_v and_o send_v to_o the_o tower_n of_o london_n where_o he_o die_v by_o the_o king_n proclamation_n the_o assembly_n conveens_fw-mi at_o bruntelan_n may_v 12._o there_o the_o king_n be_v present_a and_o commissioner_n john_n hall_n be_v choose_v moderator_n i._o a_o general_a assembly_n the_o 63._o assembly_n complaint_n be_v of_o the_o want_n of_o purity_n zeal_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n in_o all_o estate_n which_o must_v end_v in_o papistry_n or_o atheism_n within_o a_o short_a space_n in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n unless_o substantious_a remedy_n be_v provide_v in_o due_a time_n nor_o can_v this_o malady_n be_v sufficient_o cure_v unless_o the_o original_a cause_n and_o special_a occasion_n thereof_o be_v ripe_a up_o the_o brethren_n be_v exhort_v dection_n the_o cause_n of_o dection_n to_o think_v upon_o this_o weighty_a matter_n and_o the_o meeting_n be_v adjourny_v for_o two_o day_n then_o the_o cause_n of_o this_o defection_n be_v judge_v to_o be_v 1._o the_o just_a wrath_n of_o god_n for_o the_o unreverent_a estimation_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o for_o the_o sin_n of_o all_o estate_n in_o dishonour_v their_o profession_n 2._o want_v of_o diligence_n on_o the_o part_n of_o minister_n in_o discover_v they_o who_o make_v apostasy_n into_o papistry_n and_o negligence_n in_o execute_v the_o law_n and_o discipline_n against_o they_o who_o be_v discover_v 3._o want_v of_o pastor_n at_o unplanted_a church_n and_o displant_n of_o church_n by_o diminution_n of_o the_o three_o 4._o neglect_v of_o town_n and_o church_n that_o be_v of_o great_a inportance_n to_o the_o interest_n of_o religion_n or_o not_o plant_v they_o with_o qualify_a pastor_n such_o as_o the_o king_n house_n the_o prince_n house_n the_o house_n of_o